Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n christian_a church_n true_a 4,006 5 4.8519 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A00793 The answere vnto the nine points of controuersy, proposed by our late soueraygne (of famous memory) vnto M. Fisher of the Society of Iesus And the reioynder vnto the reply of D. Francis VVhite minister. With the picture of the sayd minister, or censure of his writings prefixed. Fisher, John, 1569-1641.; Floyd, John, 1572-1649. 1626 (1626) STC 10911; ESTC S102112 538,202 656

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

doctrine_n &_o matter_n and_o of_o thing_n believe_v what_o be_v divine_a faith_n but_o to_o believe_v thing_n we_o do_v videntur_fw-la do_v argumentum_fw-la non_fw-la apparentium_fw-la hebr._n 11.1_o fide_fw-la credimus_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la videmus_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr l._n 12._o c._n 31._o et_fw-la enchirid._n c._n 8._o fides_n quam_fw-la divina_fw-la eloquia_fw-la docent_fw-la est_fw-la earum_fw-la rerum_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la videntur_fw-la not_o see_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reveal_v they_o who_o we_o know_v to_o be_v worthy_a of_o all_o credit_n so_o that_o howsoever_o some_o learned_a man_n may_v otherwise_o see_v some_o doctrine_n reveal_v by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n yet_o never_o by_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n for_o faith_n be_v that_o virtue_n whereby_o we_o operandi_fw-la we_o fides_n inchoat_fw-la meritum_fw-la aug._n l._n 1._o retrac_fw-la c._n 23._o et_fw-fr epist_n 106._o fides_n meretur_fw-la gratiam_fw-la bene_fw-la operandi_fw-la merit_v and_o please_v god_n by_o show_v reverence_n to_o his_o word_n but_o what_o merit_n or_o god-have-mercy_o be_v it_o to_o believe_v what_o we_o see_v manifest_o meritum_fw-la manifest_o augustin_n tract_n 79._o in_o joan._n laus_fw-la fidei_fw-la est_fw-la si_fw-la quod_fw-la creditur_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la &_o gregor_n hom_n 26._o in_o euang._n cyprian_n serm._n de_fw-fr natiu_fw-la christi_fw-la haec_fw-la fides_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la meritum_fw-la convict_v by_o the_o evidence_n thereof_o what_o pious_a affection_n to_o god_n word_n do_v a_o man_n show_v by_o see_v it_o to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o three_o argument_n three_o it_o be_v extreme_a disorder_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v est_fw-la say_v august_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 14._o pri●s_fw-la videre_fw-la velle_fw-la ut_fw-la animum_fw-la purge_n perversum_fw-la atque_fw-la prae_fw-la posterum_fw-la est_fw-la first_o to_o see_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v whereas_o we_o ought_v first_o firm_o to_o believe_v what_o we_o do_v not_o see_v that_o so_o we_o may_v divine_a may_v see_v this_o minister_n reply_n pag._n 16._o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o the_o book_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v divine_a merit_v to_o see_v what_o we_o have_v believe_v but_o protestant_n pretend_v first_o to_o see_v the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o scripture_n doctrine_n thence_o conclude_v divine_a conclude_v see_v this_o minister_n reply_n pag._n 16._o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o the_o book_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v divine_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o high_a and_o divine_a truth_n as_o they_o forsooth_o see_v it_o to_o be_v can_v but_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n and_o if_o 19_o if_o if_o divine_a then_o apostolical_a reply_v pag._n 19_o reveal_v of_o god_n then_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n if_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o full_a public_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o subsequent_a age_n history_n age_n pag._n 105._o the_o minister_n say_v if_o we_o can_v demonstrate_v we_o maintain_v the_o religion_n which_o the_o holy_a apostle_n teach_v this_o alone_a be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n though_o we_o can_v not_o nominate_v any_o visible_a church_n of_o our_o religion_n out_o of_o history_n though_o the_o preacher_n &_o professor_n thereof_o be_v never_o see_v nor_o can_v be_v name_v thus_o disorderly_o they_o place_v the_o cart_n before_o the_o horse_n they_o know_v that_o their_o religion_n be_v supernatural_a truth_n before_o they_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v either_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o god_n the_o four_o argument_n four_o it_o be_v great_a blindenes_n and_o frantic_a and_o field_n appendix_n part_n 2._o pag._n 20._o do_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o who_o see_v not_o this_o light_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o pretend_v it_o must_v be_v brain_n sick_a and_o frantic_a want_v of_o common_a sense_n for_o man_n that_o digladiate_a among_o themselves_o about_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o which_o be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a and_o which_o not_o to_o pretend_v that_o they_o be_v enable_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o discern_v heavenly_a writing_n doctrine_n and_o sense_n from_o humane_a by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o easy_o as_o man_n distinguish_v light_a from_o darkness_n honey_n from_o gall_n protestant_n disagree_v and_o contend_v bitter_o about_o the_o very_a scripture_n they_o daily_o peruse_v see_v and_o behold_v which_o text_n and_o sense_n be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a which_o not_o as_o to_o omit_v many_o other_o example_n about_o apocryphal_a about_o luther_n praefat_fw-la in_o epist._n jacobi_fw-la edit_fw-la jenensi_fw-la chemnitius_n enchyrid_a pag._n 63._o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n the_o second_o of_o peter_n the_o second_o and_o three_o of_o john_n the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n the_o apocalyps_n of_o john_n be_v apocryphal_a the_o epistle_n of_o james_n and_o about_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o yet_o they_o amarae_fw-la they_o john_n white_a say_v they_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v divine_a by_o their_o own_o light_n shine_v and_o by_o their_o own_o show_v itself_o in_o they_o as_o sweetness_n be_v know_v by_o it_o own_o taste_n caluin_n lib._n 1._o institut_fw-la c._n 7._o §._o 2._o in_o fine_a non_fw-la obscuriorem_fw-la veritatis_fw-la suae_fw-la seipsum_fw-la scriptura_fw-la ult●ò_fw-la praese_n fert_fw-la quàm_fw-la coloris_fw-la suire_v albae_fw-la &_o nigrae_fw-la saporis_fw-la res_fw-la suave_n &_o amarae_fw-la challenge_v resolution_n in_o these_o matter_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n make_v they_o to_o see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o to_o discern_v true_a scripture_n in_o text_n and_o sense_n from_o false_a as_o easy_o as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n from_o darkness_n what_o can_v be_v more_o fond_a and_o ridiculous_a the_o five_o argument_n five_o if_o no_o man_n be_v save_v without_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a faith_n and_o if_o supernatural_a faith_n be_v resolve_v not_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n what_o hope_v of_o salvation_n can_v wise_a and_o prudent_a man_n expect_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n without_o divine_a illumination_n make_v they_o to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v they_o can_v have_v supernatural_a faith_n nor_o be_v save_v if_o protestant_n say_v true_a wise_a &_o prudent_a man_n can_v be_v so_o fond_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o believe_v by_o christian_a faith_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o other_o like_a article_n believe_v what_o church_n what_o protestant_n be_v force_v by_o this_o argument_n to_o contradict_v themselves_o for_o sometime_o they_o teach_v that_o faith_n build_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o human_a and_o acquisite_a not_o sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n thus_o our_o minister_n pag._n 14._o and_o yet_o at_o other_o time_n they_o teach_v that_o novice_n and_o weakling_n have_v faith_n sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n who_o say_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n this_o also_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 22._o saying_n novice_n in_o faith_n ground_n their_o historical_a faith_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n then_o can_v they_o expect_v but_o most_o certain_a damnation_n in_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o this_o protestant_a way_n to_o resolve_v supernatural_a faith_n be_v the_o truth_n the_o sixth_o argument_n final_o no_o devise_n more_o proper_a of_o satan_n to_o entrap_v simple_a soul_n than_o the_o promise_n of_o clear_a and_o manifest_a truth_n this_o be_v the_o very_a 11.3_o very_a timeo_fw-la ne_fw-la sicut_fw-la serpens_fw-la hevam_fw-la seduxit_fw-la astutiâ_fw-la suâ_fw-la ita_fw-la corrumpantur_fw-la sensus_fw-la vestri_fw-la &_o excidant_fw-la simplicitate_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o christo._n 2._o cor._n 11.3_o mean_n of_o delusion_n whereby_o he_o deceyve_v our_o first_o parent_n eve_n and_o 3.4_o and_o gen._n 3.4_o win_v she_o to_o taste_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n for_o what_o more_o grateful_a unto_o man_n that_o groan_v under_o the_o potest_fw-la the_o augustin_n de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred_a c._n 9_o vera_fw-la religio_fw-la sine_fw-la quodam_fw-la gravi_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la imperio_fw-la iniri_fw-la rectè_fw-la nullo_n pacto_fw-la potest_fw-la yoke_n of_o christian_a authority_n press_v they_o to_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v not_o see_v they_o this_o ibid._n this_o haeretici_fw-la non_fw-la se_fw-la iugum_fw-la credendi_fw-la imponere_fw-la sed_fw-la docendi_fw-la fontem_fw-la aperire_fw-la gloriantur_fw-la augustin_n ibid._n promise_n of_o heresy_n follow_v we_o &_o you_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o god_n see_v the_o truth_n you_o shall_v by_o follow_v we_o not_o dark_o believe_v but_o know_v good_a from_o bad_a truth_n from_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o evidence_n &_o
●f_n his_o spirit_n inward_o move_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o adhere_v unto_o a_o infallible_a external_a ground_n of_o assurance_n propose_v unto_o he_o god_n by_o the_o help_n of_o his_o grace_n make_v he_o apprehend_v divine_o of_o the_o authority_n thereof_o this_o second_o manner_n of_o inward_a assurance_n be_v ordinary_o give_v unto_o every_o christian_a without_o 6._o without_o triden_n sess_v 6._o can._n 3._o arausican_n 2._o can._n 6._o which_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o believe_v supernatural_o and_o as_o he_o ought_v unto_o salvation_n the_o first_o manner_n of_o assurance_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n such_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v wherefore_o protestant_n if_o they_o callenge_v this_o first_o manner_n of_o inward_a teach_n &_o assurance_n they_o approve_v enthusiasm_n &_o immediate_a revelation_n which_o in_o the_o swenkfeldian_o they_o seem_v to_o condemn_v if_o they_o challenge_v only_o the_o second_o manner_n of_o inward_a teach_n and_o assurance_n then_o beside_o inward_a light_n they_o must_v assign_v a_o external_a sufficient_a ground_n why_o they_o believe_v these_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n &_o then_o i_o ask_v what_o ground_n this_o be_v beside_o tradition_n second_o they_o will_v object_v that_o though_o they_o have_v no_o infallible_a ground_n beside_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o teach_v immediate_o in_o prophetical_a manner_n because_o they_o be_v also_o teach_v by_o a_o external_a probable_a motive_n to_o wit_v the_o church_n tradition_n i_o answer_v that_o except_o they_o assign_v a_o external_a infallible_a mean_n beside_o god_n inward_a teach_n they_o can_v avoid_v but_o they_o challenge_v immediate_a revelation_n for_o whosoever_o know_v thing_n assure_o by_o the_o inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n without_o a_o external_a infallible_a motive_n unto_o which_o he_o do_v adhere_v be_v assure_v prophetical_o though_o he_o have_v some_o external_a probable_a motive_n so_o to_o think_v s._n peter_n have_v some_o conjectural_a sign_n of_o simon_n magus_n his_o perversity_n &_o incorrigible_a malice_n yet_o see_v esse_fw-la see_v act._n 8.32_o in_o felle_fw-la amaritudinis_fw-la &_o obligatione_fw-la peccati_fw-la video_fw-la te_fw-la esse_fw-la he_o know_v it_o assure_o we_o believe_v he_o know_v it_o by_o the_o light_n of_o prophesy_n because_o beside_o inward_a assurance_n he_o have_v no_o external_a infallible_a ground_n if_o one_o see_v a_o man_n give_v public_o alm_n though_o he_o perceive_v probable_a token_n &_o sign_n that_o he_o do_v it_o out_o of_o a_o vayneglorious_a intention_n yet_o can_v he_o be_v sure_a thereof_o but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n because_o the_o other_o token_n be_v not_o ground_n sufficient_a to_o make_v he_o sure_o for_o if_o a_o man_n be_v sure_a &_o have_v no_o ground_n of_o this_o assurance_n in_o any_o thing_n out_o of_o his_o own_o hart_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o be_v assure_v immediate_o &_o only_o by_o god_n inward_a speak_v wherefore_o protestant_n if_o they_o will_v disclaim_v in_o truth_n and_o not_o in_o word_n only_o from_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o teach_n they_o must_v either_o grant_v tradition_n to_o be_v infallible_a or_o else_o assign_v some_o external_a infallible_a ground_n beside_o tradition_n whereby_o they_o be_v teach_v what_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v three_o they_o will_v say_v they_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o external_a infallible_a ground_n beside_o tradition_n to_o wit_n by_o certain_a light_n lustre_n evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o they_o see_v to_o blaze_v &_o emane_n from_o the_o thing_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v heavenly_a i_o answer_v if_o they_o do_v see_v such_o lustre_n and_o light_n that_o clear_o &_o not_o only_o probable_o convince_v the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v heavenly_a truth_n they_o be_v not_o indeed_o assure_v by_o immediate_a dark_a revelation_n but_o by_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o heavenly_a knowledge_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o supernatural_a light_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n believe_v which_o be_v a_o paradox_n and_o pretence_n far_o more_o false_a and_o sensible_o absurd_a then_o be_v the_o challenge_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n or_o enthusiasm_n as_o have_v be_v show_v wherefore_o see_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v no_o external_a mean_n beside_o catholic_a tradition_n to_o make_v man_n know_v perpetual_o until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n what_o doctrine_n &_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n publish_v it_o be_v clear_a unto_o every_o christian_a that_o this_o be_v the_o mean_n by_o he_o choose_v &_o which_o he_o do_v assist_v that_o it_o can_v be_v obnoxious_a unto_o error_n so_o that_o precedent_o and_o independent_o of_o scripture_n the_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o christian_a pastor_n &_o father_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a through_o divine_a special_a assistance_n and_o therefore_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o faith_n infallible_a assurance_n the_o four_o principle_n prove_v §._o 6._o if_o we_o be_v resolve_v that_o save_v truth_n be_v that_o which_o god_n reveal_v that_o he_o reveal_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n publish_v the_o doctrine_n publish_v by_o then_o the_o catholic_a christian_a tradition_n our_o search_n be_v end_v when_o we_o have_v find_v the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n here_o the_o four_o enemy_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n offer_v himself_o to_o wit_n the_o wilful_a ignorant_a these_o kind_n of_o man_n not_o only_o hold_v against_o pagan_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v that_o only_o which_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n against_o jew_n the_o reveal_v of_o god_n to_o be_v only_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o in_o word_n they_o condemn_v the_o heretic_n &_o profess_v that_o no_o doctrine_n be_v true_o apostolical_a but_o the_o catholic_n yet_o in_o resolve_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o catholic_a they_o follow_v the_o partiality_n of_o their_o affection_n these_o be_v term_v by_o 1._o by_o de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred_a c._n 1._o s._n augustine_n credentes_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la believer_n of_o heretic_n build_v upon_o the_o seem_a learning_n and_o sanctity_n of_o some_o man_n be_v therein_o so_o wilful_a as_o to_o venture_v their_o soul_n that_o such_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a not_o care_v nor_o know_v what_o they_o say_v nor_o what_o the_o word_n catholic_a put_v into_o the_o creed_n by_o the_o apostle_n do_v import_v some_o be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a do_v signify_v the_o same_o as_o conform_v unto_o scripture_n and_o so_o what_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a they_o resolve_v by_o the_o light_n and_o lustre_n of_o the_o doctrine_n or_o by_o the_o in_o ward_n teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o they_o fall_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o heresy_n and_o become_v not_o so_o much_o believer_n of_o heretic_n as_o heretic_n some_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n catholic_a doctrine_n true_o catholic_a that_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o christian_a world_n of_o father_n unto_o christian_a world_n of_o child_n yet_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o to_o give_v this_o title_n unto_o sect_n late_o spring_v up_o which_o through_o pretend_a singular_a illumination_n get_v by_o peruse_v the_o scripture_n have_v choose_v form_n of_o faith_n opposite_a one_o against_o another_o reform_v against_o the_o form_n to_o they_o deliver_v by_o their_o ancestor_n these_o sect_n i_o say_v they_o term_v catholic_a which_o not_o to_o be_v catholic_a in_o this_o sense_n be_v as_o evident_a as_o that_o night_n be_v not_o day_n some_o through_o wilful_a ignorance_n no_o less_o gross_o divide_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a according_a to_o the_o division_n of_o country_n name_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n which_o speech_n have_v no_o more_o sense_n than_o this_o a_o fashion_n ever_o since_o christ_n universal_o over_o the_o world_n new_o begin_v and_o proper_a unto_o england_n against_o this_o enemy_n true_a religion_n be_v resolve_v in_o this_o four_o principle_n the_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o roman_n by_o roman_a we_o understand_v not_o only_o the_o religion_n profess_v within_o the_o city_n &_o diocese_n of_o rome_n but_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o they_o that_o any_o where_fw-mi acknowledge_v the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n which_o now_o be_v the_o roman_a bishop_n about_o this_o principle_n faith_n be_v assure_v by_o a_o four_o perfection_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prime_a verity_n reveal_v truth_n which_o be_v that_o he_o can_v permit_v that_o the_o know_v of_o save_v doctrine_n be_v impossible_a hence_o i_o argue_v god_n be_v prime_a verity_n reveal_v can_v permit_v the_o mean_n of_o know_v his_o save_a truth_n to_o be_v hide_v nor_o a_o false_a mean_n to_o
be_v so_o adorn_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a as_o the_o true_a become_v indiscernible_a from_o it_o but_o if_o the_o roman_a be_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_a tradition_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o tradition_n be_v hide_v yea_o a_o false_a church_n have_v so_o clear_o the_o mark_n of_o catholic_a that_o no_o other_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n pretend_v to_o be_v rather_o catholic_a then_o it_o that_o be_v to_o have_v doctrine_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o whole_a world_n of_o christian_a father_n unto_o whole_a world_n of_o christian_a child_n hence_o either_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o know_v assure_o the_o save_a truth_n or_o else_o the_o mean_n be_v immediate_a revelation_n that_o be_v inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n without_o any_o external_a infallible_a mean_n or_o else_o scripture_n know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o true_o sense_v by_o the_o light_n lustre_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o way_n of_o teach_v it_o be_v certain_a god_n do_v not_o use_v towards_o his_o militant_a church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n for_o teach_v of_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a truth_n by_o the_o light_n lustre_n and_o shine_v of_o the_o thing_n or_o doctrine_n be_v proper_a unto_o the_o church_n triumphant_a inward_a assurance_n without_o any_o external_a infallible_a ground_n to_o assure_v man_n of_o truth_n be_v proper_a unto_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o first_o publisher_n of_o christian_a religion_n hence_o i_o conclude_v that_o if_o god_n be_v the_o prime_a verity_n teach_v christian_a religion_n dark_o without_o make_v man_n see_v the_o light_n and_o lustre_n of_o thing_n believe_v and_o mediate_o by_o some_o external_a infallible_a mean_n upon_o which_o inward_a assurance_n must_v rely_v then_o he_o must_v ever_o conserve_v the_o catholic_a tradition_n and_o church_n visible_a and_o conspicuous_a that_o the_o same_o may_v without_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o otherwise_o they_o by_o the_o lustre_n of_o doctrine_n be_v discern_v to_o wit_n by_o sensible_a mark_n if_o any_o object_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o man_n in_o this_o search_n may_v be_v deceive_v through_o natural_a invincible_a fallibility_n of_o their_o organ_n and_o so_o no_o ground_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v altogether_o infallible_a i_o answer_v that_o evidence_n have_v by_o sense_n be_v but_o the_o private_a of_o one_o man_n be_v natural_o and_o physical_o infallible_a but_o when_o the_o same_o be_v also_o public_a and_o catholic_a that_o be_v when_o a_o whole_a world_n of_o man_n concur_v with_o he_o than_o his_o evidence_n be_v altogether_o infallible_a beside_o see_v god_n have_v resolve_v not_o to_o teach_v man_n immediate_o but_o will_v have_v they_o to_o cleave_v unto_o a_o external_a infallible_a mean_n &_o to_o find_v out_o this_o mean_n by_o the_o sensible_a evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n he_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o veracity_n to_o assist_v man_n sense_n with_o his_o providence_n that_o therein_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v when_o they_o use_v such_o diligence_n as_o man_n ordinary_o use_v that_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o their_o sense_n now_o what_o great_a evidence_n can_v one_o have_v that_o he_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o this_o matter_n of_o sense_n that_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n be_v the_o catholic_a that_o be_v doctrine_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o world_n of_o christian_a ancestor_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n unanimous_a among_o themselves_o in_o all_o matter_n they_o believe_v as_o faith_n what_o great_a assurance_n i_o say_v can_v one_o have_v that_o herein_o he_o see_v aright_o than_o a_o whole_a world_n of_o man_n profess_v to_o see_v the_o same_o that_o he_o do_v some_o may_v again_o object_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n set_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n but_o faith_n be_v resolution_n about_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v i_o answer_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v visible_a according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n &_o yet_o invisible_a according_a to_o the_o manner_n it_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o creed_n the_o three_o article_n he_o suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v evident_a unto_o sense_n and_o see_v even_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o be_v now_o believe_v of_o their_o posterity_n but_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o creed_n to_o wit_n that_o herein_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o his_o ancient_a prophet_n be_v fulfil_v that_o this_o be_v do_v in_o charity_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n i_o say_v that_o visible_a article_n be_v invisible_a and_o believe_v in_o the_o creed_n in_o like_a manner_n that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o catholic_a church_n pagan_n jew_n &_o heretic_n if_o they_o shut_v not_o their_o eye_n against_o the_o light_n do_v clear_o behold_v but_o that_o herein_o the_o word_n of_o god_n about_o the_o perpetual_a amplitude_n of_o his_o church_n be_v accomplish_v that_o this_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o god_n veracity_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o mean_n to_o learn_v save_v truth_n may_v not_o be_v hide_v this_o be_v a_o thing_n invisible_a &_o according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v propose_v in_o the_o creed_n second_o proposition_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v invisible_a according_a to_o the_o predicate_v or_o thing_n believe_v but_o not_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o subject_n or_o thing_n whereof_o we_o believe_v the_o thing_n the_o apostle_n believe_v of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v thing_n invisible_a but_o the_o subject_n and_o person_n of_o who_o they_o do_v believe_v be_v to_o they_o visible_a &_o see_v yea_o god_n do_v of_o purpose_n by_o his_o prophet_n foretell_v certain_a token_n whereby_o that_o subject_n may_v by_o sense_n be_v see_v and_o discern_v from_o all_o other_o that_o may_v pretend_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n or_o else_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n to_o teach_v the_o truth_n have_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n in_o this_o sort_n the_o predicate_a or_o thing_n believe_v in_o this_o article_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n holy_a be_v invisible_a but_o the_o subject_n to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a church_n which_o we_o affirm_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v holy_a in_o her_o doctrine_n be_v visible_a and_o conspicuous_a unto_o all_o yea_o god_n have_v of_o purpose_n foretell_v sign_n and_o token_n whereby_o the_o same_o by_o sense_n may_v be_v clear_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o that_o may_v pretend_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a for_o be_v not_o this_o subject_n the_o catholic_a church_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v holy_a and_o infallible_a in_o her_o teach_n visible_a and_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o that_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o what_o use_n be_v it_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o infallible_a teach_a church_n in_o the_o world_n hide_a we_o know_v not_o where_o as_o a_o needle_n in_o a_o bottle_n of_o hay_n the_o end_n of_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n these_o thing_n suppose_v the_o reader_n will_v have_v no_o difficulty_n to_o discern_v how_o frivolous_a the_o minister_n exception_n be_v against_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o believe_a doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n into_o perpetual_a tradition_n and_o how_o solid_a the_o jesuit_n discourse_n be_v which_o here_o ensue_v the_o first_o ground_n that_o a_o christian_a resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o perpetual_a tradition_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n §._o 1._o before_o i_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o principle_n some_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v presuppose_v which_o i_o think_v protestant_n will_v not_o deny_v first_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v or_o attain_v to_o the_o blissful_a vision_n of_o god_n without_o firm_a and_o assure_a apprehension_n of_o divine_a &_o supernatural_a truth_n concern_v his_o last_o end_n and_o the_o mean_n to_o arrive_v thereunto_o second_o that_o this_o assure_a apprehension_n be_v not_o have_v by_o a_o doctrine_n a_o the_o minister_n here_o grant_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o have_v by_o clear_a &_o evident_a sight_n but_o afterward_o he_o say_v the_o same_o be_v resolve_v by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n clear_a and_o evident_a sight_n nor_o get_v by_o demonstration_n or_o humane_a discourse_n by_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n nor_o can_v be_v sufficient_o have_v by_o credit_n give_v to_o mere_o humane_a authority_n but_o only_o by_o faith_n ground_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reveal_v unto_o man_n thing_n that_o otherwise_o be_v know_v only_o to_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n three_o that_o god_n
be_v sufficient_a for_o every_o man_n see_v the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o every_o man_n but_o express_o of_o he_o who_o be_v homo_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v one_o already_o full_o instruct_v and_o firm_o settle_v by_o tradition_n in_o all_o the_o main_n point_v of_o christian_a faith_n and_o godly_a life_n such_o a_o one_o as_o timothy_n be_v the_o scripture_n for_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n aforetaught_a and_o ground_v in_o faith_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_a who_o will_v deny_v it_o but_o this_o prove_v at_o the_o most_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n join_v with_o tradition_n not_o of_o scripture_n alone_o or_o of_o onely-onely-one_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n book_n in_o great_a letter_n very_o earnest_o affirm_v hence_o also_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o 34.35.36_o the_o the_o minister_n to_o prove_v scripture_n be_v clear_a unto_o infidel_n that_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n heap_n many_o testimony_n of_o father_n that_o teach_v scripture_n in_o some_o matter_n to_o be_v clear_a who_o deny_v this_o they_o be_v so_o to_o the_o faithful_a not_o unto_o infidel_n not_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v unsettle_a in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n yea_o many_o place_n he_o bring_v speak_v express_o only_a of_o the_o faithful_a &_o pious_a sicut_fw-la vera_fw-la religio_fw-la docet_fw-la accedunt_fw-la as_o s._n augustine_n &_o other_o by_o he_o allege_v affirm_v and_o therefore_o be_v bring_v impertinent_o to_o prove_v the_o sufficiency_n &_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o infidel_n pag._n 34.35.36_o many_o allegation_n of_o father_n which_o protestant_n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v clear_a in_o all_o substantial_a point_n be_v impertinent_a because_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o man_n aforehand_o instruct_v in_o all_o substantial_a point_n who_o may_v by_o the_o light_n of_o tradition_n easy_o discover_v they_o in_o scripture_n as_o they_o that_o hear_v aristotle_n explicate_v himself_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n may_v understand_v his_o book_n of_o nature_n most_o difficile_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o they_o that_o never_o hear_v his_o explication_n either_o out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n or_o by_o tradition_n of_o his_o scholar_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o your_o most_o learned_a majesty_n sufficient_o demonstrate_v this_o first_o ground_n of_o catholic_a faith_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o christian_a be_v original_o and_o fundamental_o build_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o as_o write_v in_o scripture_n but_o as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n successive_o from_o the_o primitive_a upon_o the_o authority_n whereof_o we_o believe_v that_o both_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o substantial_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n thence_o further_o ascend_v &_o infer_v they_o come_v from_o christ_n and_o so_o from_o god_n the_o prime_a veracity_n &_o author_n of_o truth_n the_o second_o ground_n that_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n always_o in_o the_o world_n to_o who_o tradition_n man_n be_v to_o cleave_v that_o this_o church_n be_v one_o universal_a apostolical_a holy_a §._o 3._o this_o principle_n be_v consequent_a upon_o the_o former_a out_o of_o which_o six_o thing_n may_v be_v cler_o prove_v first_o that_o there_o be_v always_o a_o true_a apostle_n true_a the_o minister_n still_o come_v forth_o with_o his_o distinction_n that_o by_o church_n we_o may_v understand_v a_o hierarchy_n of_o mitre_a prelate_n &_o they_o he_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o church_n teach_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o world_n second_o for_o a_o number_n of_o believer_n small_a or_o great_a teach_v and_o profess_v the_o right_n say_v in_o all_o substantial_a point_n &_o then_o he_o grant_v there_o be_v still_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n this_o distinction_n so_o much_o repeat_v special_o pag._n 57_o and_o 58._o be_v impertinent_a for_o by_o church_n we_o understand_v not_o every_o small_a number_n of_o right_a believer_n but_o a_o christian_a multitude_n of_o such_o credit_n and_o authority_n as_o upon_o her_o tradition_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a what_o scripture_n &_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n for_o this_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v that_o so_o we_o may_v know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n and_o it_o can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v now_o whether_o this_o church_n be_v mitre_a or_o not_o mitre_a go_v in_o black_a or_o in_o white_a or_o in_o scarlet_a do_v little_a import_n let_v the_o minister_n but_o show_v we_o a_o church_n that_o have_v evident_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n &_o we_o will_v say_v she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n though_o she_o have_v no_o surplice_n or_o mitre_n but_o be_v as_o precise_a as_o geneva_n itself_o but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o this_o hierarchy_n of_o mitre_a prelate_n who_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n can_v assure_v man_n which_o be_v the_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n man_n ought_v not_o to_o bear_v such_o spleen_n against_o a_o mitre_n or_o corner-cap_n or_o surplice_n as_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o to_o fly_v from_o the_o church_n that_o only_o have_v catholic_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n for_o man_n to_o know_v that_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o substantial_a article_n come_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o god_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o all_o age_n a_o church_n receive_v and_o deliver_v these_o tradition_n else_o man_n in_o some_o age_n since_o christ_n shall_v have_v be_v destitute_a of_o the_o apostle_n the_o the_o minister_n pa._n 59_o lin_v 15._o say_v a_o corrupt_a church_n may_v deliver_v uncorrupt_o some_o part_n of_o sacred_a truth_n as_o the_o scripture_n and_o creed_n by_o which_o man_n may_v be_v save_v answer_n we_o may_v conceive_v two_o way_n of_o deliver_v a_o incorrupt_a text_n the_o one_o casual_a &_o by_o chance_n and_o so_o a_o corrupt_a church_n yea_o a_o jew_n a_o infidel_n a_o child_n may_v deliver_v a_o uncorrupt_a copy_n of_o the_o bible_n the_o other_o authentic_a assure_v the_o receiver_n this_o to_o be_v the_o incorrupt_a text_n of_o the_o apostle_n scripture_n and_o bind_v he_o so_o to_o believe_v this_o authentik_a and_o irrefragable_a tradition_n can_v be_v make_v by_o a_o false_a church_n err_v in_o her_o tradition_n as_o be_v clear_a now_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o man_n not_o only_o casual_o have_v the_o true_a scripture_n but_o must_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o text_n thereof_o be_v incorrupt_a therefore_o there_o must_v be_v still_o a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n who_o tradition_n be_v authentic_a that_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n upon_o which_o man_n must_v believe_v doctrine_n to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n because_o they_o have_v not_o mean_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o substantial_a article_n of_o christianity_n without_o assure_a faith_n whereof_o no_o man_n be_v save_v second_o this_o church_n must_v be_v always_o obstinate_a always_o the_o minister_n pag._n 61._o lin_v 15_o &_o lin_v 26._o object_n that_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v repute_v a_o impious_a sect_n by_o the_o multitude_n and_o so_o not_o be_v know_v by_o the_o notion_n of_o true_a and_o holy_a nor_o can_v her_o truth_n be_v discern_v by_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n i_o answer_v as_o there_o be_v four_o property_n of_o church-doctrin_n so_o likewise_o there_o be_v four_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o be_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o the_o save_a truth_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o the_o natural_a understanding_n both_o of_o man_n and_o angel_n for_o god_n only_o &_o his_o bless_a see_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o second_o be_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o doctrine_n true_o reveal_v by_o secret_a inspiration_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n ordinary_o speak_v the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o almost_o all_o man_n that_o be_v or_o ever_o be_v the_o apostle_n only_o and_o the_o prophet_n except_v the_o three_o to_o be_v mistress_n of_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o their_o miraculous_a preach_v plant_v in_o the_o world_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v visible_a to_o the_o first_o and_o primitive_a world_n but_o now_o be_v not_o the_o four_o to_o be_v mistress_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n that_o be_v of_o doctrine_n deliver_v and_o receive_v by_o full_a tradition_n and_o profession_n all_o the_o adversaries_n thereof_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o
of_o the_o church_n disagree_v about_o matter_n which_o they_o preach_v as_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v their_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n be_v of_o credit_n therein_o or_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o persuade_v who_o will_v or_o can_v firm_o believe_v disagree_v witness_n upon_o their_o word_n and_o this_o truth_n this_o by_o this_o note_n protestant_n be_v convince_v not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o protestant_a church_n allow_v that_o dissonant_n doctrine_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n she_o permit_v that_o her_o preacher_n condemn_v each_o other_o as_o heretic_n without_o disclaim_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o either_o side_n for_o she_o embrace_v in_o her_o communion_n both_o lutheran_n who_o preach_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o carnal_a manducation_n of_o christ_n true_a body_n by_o the_o wicked_a luther_n tom_n 3._o germ._n fol._n 264._o and_o caluinist_n who_o detest_v this_o carnal_a manducation_n as_o blasphemous_a and_o impious_a caluin_n admonit_fw-la 3._o ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n that_o allow_v of_o dissonant_n preach_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o how_o can_v she_o be_v the_o one_o true_a church_n which_o allow_v that_o doctrine_n she_o know_v to_o be_v false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o religion_n &_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n the_o protestant_a church_n know_v that_o of_o contrary_a doctrine_n the_o one_o side_n must_v needs_o be_v false_a therefore_o consent_v that_o both_o side_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o faith_n &_o as_o save_v truth_n she_o yield_v that_o doctrine_n knowne_o false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n and_o save_a truth_n and_o so_o be_v mistress_n of_o falsehood_n as_o much_o as_o of_o truth_n consent_n must_v be_v conspicuous_a and_o evident_a for_o if_o in_o outward_a appearance_n and_o show_n preacher_n dissent_v one_o from_o another_o in_o main_n &_o material_a doctrine_n their_o authority_n be_v craze_v and_o their_o testimony_n of_o no_o esteem_n howsoever_o perchance_o their_o dissension_n may_v be_v by_o some_o distinction_n so_o colour_v that_o one_o can_v reader_n can_v one_o can_v convince_v a_o obstinate_a gaynsayer_n &_o wrester_n of_o word_n but_o still_o he_o will_v wrangle_v yet_o may_v he_o be_v convince_v that_o he_o do_v falsify_v and_o wrong_v author_n in_o his_o interpretation_n and_o this_o evident_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o indifferent_a reader_n convince_v he_o that_o will_v bold_o undertake_v to_o defend_v as_o 42_o as_o d._n field_n lib._n 3._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 42_o doctor_n field_n undertake_v for_o protestant_n that_o their_o dissension_n be_v but_o verbal_a but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n do_v the_o accuse_a dissentioner_n allow_v this_o doctor_n reconciliation_n do_v they_o give_v over_o contention_n thereupon_o no_o but_o profess_v that_o such_o reconciler_n miss_v of_o their_o meaning_n &_o that_o they_o disagree_v substantial_o about_o the_o very_a prime_a article_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v these_o man_n be_v witness_n of_o credit_n for_o substantial_a article_n concern_v which_o there_o be_v open_o confess_v &_o profess_a dissension_n among_o they_o five_o i_o infer_v that_o this_o church_n be_v universal_a spread_v over_o all_o nation_n that_o she_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o moral_o where_o moral_o that_o be_v according_a unto_o common_a humane_a reputation_n by_o which_o a_o thing_n diffuse_v over_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n &_o famous_o know_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 1.12_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o church_n be_v still_o universal_a and_o every_o where_o by_o this_o be_v answer_v all_o the_o minister_n bring_v upon_o mistake_v of_o moral_o moral_o speak_v be_v so_o diffuse_v that_o the_o whole_a know_a world_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o she_o as_o of_o a_o worthy_a and_o credible_a witness_n of_o christian_a tradition_n howsoever_o her_o outward_a glory_n and_o splendour_n peace_n and_o tranquillity_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v in_o some_o place_n more_o or_o less_o and_o not_o ever_o in_o all_o place_n at_o once_o a_o truth_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o may_v be_v evident_o prove_v out_o of_o 34.37_o of_o the_o text_n apocalyps_n 20.8_o say_v they_o the_o pursevamt_n of_o antichrist_n go_v upon_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v about_o the_o camp_n of_o saint_n &_o belove_a city_n which_o place_n prove_v clear_o that_o the_o church_n and_o camp_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n this_o verse_n the_o minister_n mistake_v of_o purpose_n and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o cit_v the_o seven_o and_o very_o absurd_o say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v persecute_v christian_n that_o be_v put_v they_o in_o prison_n &_o kill_v they_o where_o they_o be_v not_o and_o protestant_n themselves_o affirm_v that_o even_o all_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v right_o famous_a &_o continue_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n bullinger_n in_o apocal._n 20._o fulke_o against_o the_o rhem._n in_o thess._n 2._o sect_n 5._o whitaker_n answer_n to_o m._n reynols_n preface_n p_o 34.37_o scripture_n apoc._n 20._o v._o 8._o that_o even_o in_o antichrists_n day_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v visible_o universal_a for_o she_o shall_v they_o be_v every_o where_o persecute_v which_o can_v not_o be_v except_o she_o be_v every_o where_o visible_a &_o conspicuous_a even_o to_o the_o wicked_a the_o reason_n of_o this_o perpetual_a visible_a universality_n be_v because_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o sole_a ordinary_a mean_n on_o which_o we_o ground_n faith_n for_o substantial_a point_n wherefore_o this_o tradition_n must_v be_v so_o deliver_v as_o it_o may_v be_v know_v to_o all_o man_n see_v god_n thereof_o god_n the_o minister_n say_v p._n 78._o l._n 22._o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v according_a to_o his_o antecedent_n will_v cite_v schoolman_n that_o say_v that_o god_n antecedent_n will_n be_v only_o a_o velleity_n a_o wish_n a_o complacence_n thence_o conclude_v that_o though_o god_n have_v antecedent_n will_v that_o all_o be_v save_v yet_o this_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o he_o always_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n by_o his_o antecedent_n will_v of_o man_n salvation_n wish_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n second_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o mean_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_a that_o all_o man_n in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o have_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o end_n to_o wit_n the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o as_o schoolman_n say_v virtual_o conditional_a that_o be_v god_n have_v a_o will_n that_o all_o man_n be_v save_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o if_o the_o course_n of_o his_o providence_n be_v not_o stop_v and_o man_n will_v cooperate_v with_o his_o grace_n whence_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o god_n do_v not_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o all_o man_n it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o on_o his_o part_n he_o wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o but_o even_o our_o minister_n pag._n 78._o lin_v 38._o grant_n that_o god_n wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n and_o of_o every_o individual_a person_n therefore_o god_n still_o make_v his_o church_n visible_o universal_a ut_fw-la neminem_fw-la lateat_fw-la as_o say_v s._n augustine_n that_o no_o man_n perish_v through_o the_o hiddennes_n and_o invisibility_n thereof_o will_v have_v all_o man_n without_o exception_n of_o any_o nation_n to_o be_v save_v &_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 2.4_o but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o still_o so_o diffuse_v in_o the_o world_n that_o all_o know_a church_n know_a the_o answerer_n write_v to_o his_o majesty_n &_o know_v the_o proverb_n sapienti_fw-la verbum_fw-la do_v intend_v by_o this_o word_n to_o insinuate_v how_o god_n provide_v mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o world_n whereof_o one_o part_n be_v many_o age_n unknown_a the_o solution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n much_o urge_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 78_o consist_v in_o these_o point_n first_o god_n our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v and_o die_v in_o this_o know_a world_n provide_v that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v still_o visible_o spread_v over_o the_o same_o &_o famous_o know_v second_o nation_n be_v not_o so_o unknown_a but_o by_o navigation_n and_o other_o such_o natural_a mean_n they_o may_v be_v discoveuer_v unto_o this_o world_n where_o our_o
●each_v that_o bless_a mary_n be_v a_o entire_a virgin_n only_o until_o ●er_n childbirth_n but_o according_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n he_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o virgin_n womb_n the_o same_o still_o rest_v entire_a and_o as_o a_o bridegroom_n out_o of_o his_o bride-chamber_n now_o you_o may_v crow_v and_o crake_v &_o crown_v your_o book_n as_o you_o do_v in_o your_o picture_n when_o you_o be_v so_o press_v by_o your_o adversary_n that_o you_o be_v force_v to_o defend_v your_o error_n by_o hold_v ancient_a heresye_n and_o by_o lay_v the_o term_n of_o sophistical_a inference_n upon_o the_o catholic_a faith_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n in_o answer_v scripture_n you_o contradict_v yourself_o and_o grant_v the_o jesuit_n the_o question_n §._o 4._o the_o vanity_n of_o your_o former_a brag_n that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v prove_v nothing_o by_o scripture_n be_v further_a make_v apparent_a in_o that_o he_o do_v so_o urge_v you_o with_o scripture_n as_o you_o be_v sometime_o force_v to_o contradict_v yourself_o sometime_o to_o grant_v as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v require_v against_o yourself_o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 98._o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christian_a pastor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n be_v infallible_a in_o her_o tradition_n because_o our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 28._o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n you_o answer_v pag._n 100_o that_o which_o be_v promise_v upon_o condition_n be_v not_o absolute_a until_o the_o condition_n be_v fulfil_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o apostle_n successor_n conditional_o and_o as_o they_o be_v one_o with_o the_o apostle_n by_o imitation_n &_o subordination_n that_o be_v so_o far_o as_o they_o walk_v in_o their_o step_n &_o conform_v their_o doctrine_n and_o ministry_n to_o the_o pattern_n receive_v from_o they_o thus_o you_o in_o this_o place_n but_o pag._n 174._o lin_v 21._o speak_v of_o the_o absolute_a perpetuity_n and_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n you_o say_v that_o the_o place_n matth._n 28.20_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v universal_a in_o respect_n of_o time_n and_o that_o it_o continue_v successive_o in_o all_o age_n this_o your_o say_n overthrow_v what_o you_o say_v that_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v upon_o condition_n wherein_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v fail_v for_o this_o place_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o world_n end_n do_v show_v the_o church_n to_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n no_o other_o way_n then_o because_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n be_v always_o and_o all_o day_n to_o the_o world_n end_n with_o his_o church_n &_o he_o can_v not_o be_v still_o in_o the_o world_n with_o his_o church_n except_o his_o church_n have_v still_o a_o be_v in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o place_n we_o may_v aswell_o or_o better_o say_v the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n then_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n without_o christ_n or_o his_o divine_a assistance_n to_o teach_v man_n infallible_o the_o truth_n wherefore_o if_o by_o this_o place_n we_o can_v as_o you_o say_v we_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v ever_o absolute_o assist_v of_o christ_n much_o less_o do_v this_o place_n convince_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n or_o further_a then_o conditional_o if_o it_o walk_v in_o ●he_n apostles_n doctrine_n contrariwise_o if_o this_o place_n ●rove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v absolute_o always_o in_o the_o world_n until_o the_o consummation_n thereof_o then_o à_fw-la for●iori_fw-la more_o strong_o and_o more_o direct_o do_v it_o prove_v ●hat_n christ_n be_v absolute_o &_o not_o only_o conditional_o present_a with_o his_o church_n all_o day_n to_o the_o world_n end_n ●o_o that_o to_o answer_v the_o jesuit_n proof_n of_o his_o religion_n ●y_a scripture_n you_o contradict_v yourself_o yea_o sometime_o ●rant_v against_o yourself_o as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v prove_v for_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n ●e_n bring_v pag._n 3_o the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n 3.15_o paul_n 1._o tim._n 3.15_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n &_o pillar_n of_o truth_n but_o the_o ground_n of_o ●ertaine_a &_o infallible_a truth_n such_o as_o the_o christian_a be_v ●ust_z be_v certain_a &_o infallible_a you_o answer_v pag._n 4._o lin_v ●_o if_o by_o the_o church_n we_o understand_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n ●●uing_v af●er_o the_o apostle_n the_o same_o be_v by_o office_n and_o calling_n ●he_v pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n in_o all_o age_n this_o your_o answer_n allow_v unto_o the_o jesuit_n asmuch_o as_o he_o desire_v 〈◊〉_d can_v desire_v to_o show_v the_o church_n to_o be_v always_o infallible_a for_o that_o which_o be_v by_o office_n and_o divine_a vocation_n the_o ●●llar_n and_o ground_n of_o infallible_a truth_n have_v by_o divine_a ordination_n and_o assistance_n sufficiency_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o office_n as_o be_v most_o evident_a the_o church_n ●hich_v be_v fallible_a &_o may_v err_v be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a pillar_n 〈◊〉_d ground_n that_o be_v have_v not_o sufficiency_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n 〈◊〉_d christian_a truth_n which_o be_v infallible_a for_o how_o can_v 〈◊〉_d building_n sure_a &_o immovable_a stand_n found_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d uncertain_a ruinous_a and_o totter_a foundation_n ●herfore_o see_v you_o grant_v the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v in_o all_o age_n the_o ground_n of_o truth_n by_o divine_a vocation_n unto_o that_o office_n you_o do_v consequent_o allow_v unto_o the_o jesuit_n as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v prove_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n be_v i●_n all_o age_n until_o the_o world_n end_n certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o her_o teach_n in_o lieu_n of_o answer_v you_o confirm_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n §._o 5._o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 38._o accuse_v minister_n of_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o to_o prove_v the_o sole_a sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o all_o man_n cite_v the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n 2._o tim._n 3.15_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v direct_v particular_o to_o timothy_n say_v they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n whence_o it_o be_v consequent_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o timothy_n and_o be_v sufficient_a for_o such_o man_n as_o tymothy_n be_v to_o wit_n for_o man_n learned_a and_o aforehand_o instruct_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o thereupon_o firm_o believe_v all_o the_o most_o main_a and_o necessary_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n that_o the_o scripture_n for_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n teach_v and_o ground_v in_o faith_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_a who_o will_v deny_v thus_o the_o jesuit_n unto_o who_o you_o shape_v this_o answer_n pag._n 39_o although_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v sometime_o restrain_v to_o the_o personal_a and_o particular_a subject_n of_o which_o they_o be_v first_o speak_v yet_o this_o be_v not_o general_a and_o when_o the_o same_o happen_v it_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o better_a argument_n then_o by_o the_o bare_a emphasis_n of_o a_o word_n for_o god_n say_v 〈◊〉_d josuah_n a_o man_n qualify_v above_o the_o ordinary_a rank_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v nor_o forsake_v thou_o josuah_n 1.5_o yet_o the_o promise_n employ_v in_o this_o text_n be_v general_a and_o common_a to_o all_o 〈◊〉_d person_n hebr._n 13.5_o thus_o you_o confirm_v the_o jesuit●_n ●olution_n in_o lieu_n of_o confute_v thereof_o for_o as_o the_o pro●ise_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v thou_o make_v particular_o unto_o jo●ue_n in_o regard_n he_o be_v a_o just_a man_n do_v not_o agree_v unto_o ●ll_a man_n but_o only_o unto_o such_o as_o josue_n be_v to_o wit_n ●nto_o just_a man_n and_o such_o as_o seek_v god_n as_o he_o do_v so_o the_o ●ext_n of_o s._n paul_n they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o valuation_n speak_v particular_o unto_o timothy_n in_o re●ard_n he_o be_v learn_v judicious_a aforehand_o instruct_v &_o ground_v in_o christian_a tradition_n do_v agree_v only_o to_o timothy_n and_o such_o man_n as_o timothy_n be_v to_o wit_n man_n aforehand_o teach_v and_o ground_v in_o the_o ●ayth_n of_o tradition_n on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o the_o promise_n ●ade_v to_o josue_n in_o regard_n he_o be_v a_o just_a man_n can_v ●e_v challenge_v of_o other_o man_n that_o be_v not_o just_a as_o he_o be_v &_o if_o they_o rely_v thereon_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o ●o_o the_o promise_n the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v
all_o your_o company_n and_o with_o the_o effect_n i_o will_v witness_v i_o unto_o you_o i_o have_v always_o say_v that_o they_o which_o fear_n and_o love_n god_n well_o can_v but_o do_v well_o and_o be_v always_o most_o faithful_a to_o their_o prince_n we_o be_v now_o better_o inform_v i_o do_v hold_v you_o to_o be_v otherwise_o then_o you_o be_v and_o you_o have_v find_v i_o other_o than_o you_o hold_v i_o i_o will_v it_o have_v be_v soon_o but_o there_o be_v mean_n to_o recompense_v what_o be_v past_a love_v i_o and_o i_o will_v love_v you_o no_o labour_n will_v we_o spare_v nor_o any_o endeavour_n omit_v nor_o stick_v to_o venture_v the_o loss_n of_o any_o thing_n dear_a unto_o we_o except_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n &_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o purchase_v a_o small_a portion_n of_o that_o favour_n your_o majesty_n mean_a subject_n enjoy_v that_o we_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n cooperate_v to_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o as_o we_o be_v persuade_v do_v on_o your_o majesties_n person_n singular_o depend_v for_o god_n rich_a in_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n as_o he_o have_v make_v your_o majesty_n partaker_n of_o his_o power_n &_o authority_n in_o govern_v this_o inferior_a world_n so_o likewise_o he_o have_v adorn_v you_o with_o many_o excellent_a gift_n as_o wisdom_n learning_n authority_n with_o foreign_a prince_n and_o common_a wealth_n make_v you_o belove_v of_o your_o subject_n that_o on_o you_o be_v cast_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o christian_a country_n as_o on_o the_o person_n who_o the_o prince_n of_o peace_n have_v beyond_o the_o rest_n enable_v to_o exoriuntur_fw-la to_o here_o our_o replicant_fw-la show_v himself_o to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o ministerial_a kind_n by_o rail_v at_o the_o answerer_n &_o by_o scorn_v peace_n and_o unity_n say_v contemptuous_o forsooth_o to_o join_v together_o again_o the_o part_n of_o christendom_n distract_v deceyvers_a love_n to_o fish_n in_o trouble_a water_n it_o be_v luther_n joy_n to_o see_v the_o world_n in_o dissension_n tom_fw-mi 9_o germ._n de_fw-fr comit._n worm_n fol._n 8._o nihil_fw-la ita_fw-la mihi_fw-la visu_fw-la iucundum_fw-la quàm_fw-la cùm_fw-la tumultus_fw-la &_o dissenssiones_fw-la exoriuntur_fw-la join_v together_o again_o the_o part_n of_o christendom_n distract_v one_o from_o another_o through_o controversy_n of_o religion_n if_o the_o request_n of_o the_o pretend_a reformer_n be_v such_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v yield_v unto_o they_o without_o overthrow_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n if_o instead_o of_o catholic_a principle_n mislike_v by_o they_o they_o do_v propose_v such_o other_o of_o their_o own_o as_o she_o may_v see_v some_o probability_n or_o almost_o possibility_n of_o assure_a continue_a peace_n likely_a to_o follow_v upon_o her_o yield_n in_o some_o point_n feeling-compassion_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o wound_n of_o discord_n bleed_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o christendom_n will_v move_v she_o to_o the_o uttermost_a approach_n towards_o protestant_n that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n can_v permit_v though_o with_o some_o disparagement_n to_o her_o honour_n but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o those_o that_o desire_v her_o reformation_n be_v so_o many_o for_o number_n and_o for_o opinion_n so_o divide_v among_o themselves_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a she_o shall_v satisfy_v all_o christendom_n all_o the_o minister_n against_o this_o clear_a &_o convince_a discourse_n of_o the_o answerer_n come_v forth_o with_o this_o syllogism_n set_v down_o in_o a_o distinct_a letter_n each_o proposition_n in_o a_o distinct_a line_n very_o majestical_o whosoever_o abide_v in_o error_n aught_o to_o reform_v the_o roman_a church_n abide_v in_o error_n ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n ought_v to_o reform_v the_o assumption_n say_v he_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o repugnancye_n of_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n with_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o this_o most_o ridiculous_a against_o he_o i_o oppose_v this_o syllogism_n the_o minister_n force_v by_o truth_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o by_o theology_n which_o he_o call_v sophystrie_n we_o give_v seem_v solution_n unto_o their_o argument_n out_o of_o scripture_n pag._n 581._o but_o argument_n unto_o which_o seem_a solution_n be_v give_v be_v not_o manifest_a ergo_fw-la protestant_n have_v no_o manifest_a argument_n to_o prove_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n and_o so_o without_o ground_n break_v the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n their_o condition_n of_o peace_n be_v that_o she_o reform_v herself_o by_o forsake_v definition_n of_o general_n counsel_n custom_n doctrine_n universal_o receive_v for_o many_o age_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n confess_o without_o any_o know_a beginning_n since_o the_o apostle_n instead_o of_o these_o mean_n so_o potent_a to_o stay_v stagger_v conscience_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o christian_a world_n in_o peace_n they_o present_v she_o with_o the_o scripture_n understand_v afterward_o understand_v the_o minister_n here_o very_o impudent_o deny_v that_o protestant_n resolve_v by_o private_a illumination_n whereas_o himself_o more_o than_o twenty_o time_n in_o this_o reply_n do_v teach_v that_o each_o protestant_n do_v last_o resolve_n by_o divine_a illumination_n whereby_o he_o see_v manifest_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o thing_n believe_v as_o will_v appear_v afterward_o by_o private_a illumination_n the_o source_n of_o discord_n from_o which_o a_o ocean_n of_o strife_n must_v needs_o flow_v these_o thing_n consider_v your_o most_o judicious_a majesty_n can_v but_o see_v that_o her_o yield_n will_v not_o compose_v debate_n already_o begin_v but_o rather_o open_a a_o wide_a gap_n unto_o innumerable_a new_a brawl_n &_o bring_v they_o into_o kingdom_n hitherto_o with_o such_o dissension_n untouched_a wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n that_o the_o catholic_a part_n can_v gain_v peace_n to_o christendom_n by_o any_o yield_n unto_o our_o adversaries_n either_o reasonable_a or_o unreasonable_a whither_o shall_v lover_n of_o concord_n turn_v themselves_o but_o unto_o your_o gracious_a majesty_n that_o have_v in_o your_o power_n the_o affection_n of_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o will_v be_v the_o satisfaction_n the_o here_o the_o minister_n rail_v vent_v new_a scold_a phrase_n gross_a error_n and_o the_o shark_a rapine_n of_o the_o romish_a harpy_n trample_v god_n truth_n and_o god_n people_n under_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o inerrable_a and_o uncontrollable_a grand_fw-fr seigneur_fw-fr of_o the_o seaven-hilled-citty_n lewd_a superstition_n roman_a tyranny_n term_v the_o answerer_n impudent_a bold_a frantic_a guide_v by_o a_o evil_a genius_n &_o the_o like_a only_o for_o motion_v unto_o his_o majesty_n the_o mean_n of_o the_o reunion_n of_o christendom_n and_o for_o his_o conceave_a some_o possibility_n to_o give_v satisfaction_n which_o his_o majesty_n himself_o do_v allow_v that_o we_o shall_v conceive_v as_o possible_a say_v except_o she_o reform_v herself_o or_o else_o be_v able_a to_o give_v i_o satisfaction_n fit_a instrument_n for_o their_o reunion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o god_n of_o charity_n have_v put_v into_o your_o majesty_n hart_n a_o desire_n of_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o into_o your_o hand_n a_o olive-bough_n crown_n of_o peace_n to_o set_v it_o on_o the_o head_n of_o christendom_n which_o weary_a of_o endless_a contention_n pour_v forth_o unto_o your_o majesty_n her_o suppliant_a complaint_n quem_fw-la das_fw-la finem_fw-la rex_fw-la magne_n laborum_fw-la and_o see_v nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o yourself_o be_v not_o yet_o satisfy_v in_o some_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n particular_o in_o the_o nine_o point_n your_o majesty_n have_v set_v down_o in_o writing_n i_o humble_o present_a unto_o your_o majesty_n these_o my_o poor_a labour_n for_o your_o satisfaction_n so_o much_o desire_v of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o this_o my_o answer_n may_v be_v in_o itself_o more_o solid_a and_o better_o accept_v off_o by_o your_o majesty_n before_o i_o descend_v unto_o particular_n i_o think_v best_o first_o to_o show_v in_o general_a the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o this_o be_v the_o occasion_n and_o subject_n of_o the_o conference_n between_o doctor_n white_a and_o i_o and_o be_v the_o church_n the_o because_o the_o minister_n here_o cavil_v note_v that_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v most_o important_a two_o way_n first_o as_o a_o truth_n which_o be_v essential_o the_o object_n of_o supernatural_a affection_n as_o of_o hope_n charity_n contrition_n without_o which_o no_o man_n be_v save_v in_o this_o kind_a the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v most_o important_a second_o as_o the_o principle_n and_o mean_n by_o which_o the_o say_a truth_n be_v propose_v without_o which_o the_o same_o can_v ordinary_o be_v know_v in_o this_o kind_n most_o important_a it_o be_v to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n most_o important_a and_o main_a point_n of_o
controversy_n in_o which_o all_o other_o be_v involue_v and_o by_o the_o decision_n thereof_o resolve_v the_o church_n 35._o church_n 2._o tim._n 3.15_o math._n 16._o isa._n c._n 2._o v._n 3._o dan._n c._n 2._o v._n 35._o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n the_o eminent_a rock_n and_o mountain_n fill_v the_o whole_a world_n on_o the_o top_n whereof_o stand_v the_o tradition_n of_o save_v doctrine_n conspicuous_a and_o immovable_a if_o this_o church_n be_v overthrow_v the_o total_a certainty_n of_o christianity_n can_v but_o with_o it_o together_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n if_o it_o be_v hide_v &_o make_v invisible_a man_n must_v needs_o wander_v in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o first_o deliver_v christian_n doctrine_n without_o end_n or_o hope_v of_o ever_o arrive_v at_o any_o certain_a issue_n and_o if_o this_o controversy_n be_v not_o examine_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o first_o place_n disputation_n by_o 19_o by_o non_fw-la ad_fw-la scripturas_fw-la provocandum_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o ijs_fw-la constituendum_fw-la certamen_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la aut_fw-la nulla_fw-la aut_fw-la parùm_fw-la certa_fw-la victoria_fw-la tertull._n in_o praescrip_n c._n 19_o scripture_n will_v prove_v fruitless_a by_o the_o sole_a evidency_n whereof_o no_o victory_n can_v be_v get_v against_o proteruious_a error_n or_o at_o lest_o no_o victory_n that_o be_v very_o scripture_n very_o the_o minister_n pag._n 8._o say_v that_o by_o the_o church_n apparent_a victory_n can_v beget_v more_o than_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v false_a for_o apparent_a victory_n be_v that_o whereby_o man_n be_v force_v to_o yield_v or_o else_o to_o disclaim_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o judge_n if_o the_o true_a church_n be_v find_v out_o and_o make_v judge_n man_n may_v be_v force_v by_o her_o sentence_n to_o yield_v unto_o truth_n or_o else_o to_o disclaim_v from_o the_o judge_n which_o yet_o we_o see_v be_v not_o do_v by_o the_o scripture_n for_o man_n that_o allow_v the_o same_o scripture_n to_o be_v judge_n neither_o be_v force_v to_o yield_v unto_o truth_n nor_o to_o appeal_v from_o the_o scripture_n yea_o say_v luther_n tom._n 2._o witt._n in_o contion_n domin_n octavae_fw-la post_fw-la trinit_fw-la fol._n 118._o never_o any_o heresy_n be_v so_o pestilent_a or_o foolish_a that_o do_v not_o cover_v itself_o with_o the_o veil_n of_o scripture_n apparent_a neither_o will_v answer_n about_o particular_a doctrine_n easy_o satisfy_v a_o mind_n preoccupy_v with_o a_o long_a continue_a dislike_n of_o they_o because_v the_o minister_n have_v repeat_v sundry_a false_a principle_n and_o move_v many_o doubt_n about_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n declare_v in_o the_o two_o ensue_a ground_n of_o the_o jesuit_n answer_n because_o also_o this_o controversy_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o rest_n by_o which_o they_o be_v final_o resolve_v and_o except_o it_o be_v clear_v in_o the_o first_o place_n heresy_n will_v be_v still_o hide_v itself_o in_o the_o obscurity_n thereof_o hence_o i_o have_v think_v necessary_a in_o this_o very_a entry_n to_o superadde_a and_o prefix_v this_o ensue_a treatise_n a_o short_a treatise_n concern_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o more_o full_a clear_n of_o the_o ensue_a controversy_n about_o tradition_n scripture_n &_o the_o church_n this_o treatise_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n in_o the_o first_o i_o will_v set_v down_o and_o refute_v the_o protestant_a form_n of_o resolution_n in_o the_o second_o declare_v and_o prove_v the_o catholic_a the_o protestant_a resolution_n of_o faith_n declare_v §._o 1._o protestant_n perceive_v that_o if_o they_o pretend_v to_o believe_v christian_a religion_n without_o see_v the_o truth_n thereof_o upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v they_o must_v consequent_o believe_v that_o god_n reveal_v it_o upon_o the_o word_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o preach_v the_o same_o to_o the_o world_n as_o doctrine_n unto_o they_o reveal_v of_o god_n &_o then_o again_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v thus_o preach_v &_o publish_v it_o by_o 19_o by_o quid_fw-la apostoli_fw-la praedicaverint_fw-la praescribam_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la probari_fw-la debere_fw-la quàm_fw-la per_fw-la easdem_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la quas_fw-la ipsi_fw-la condiderunt_fw-la tertull._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 19_o the_o light_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v they_o deliver_v it_o hand_n to_o hand_n as_o from_o they_o which_o tradition_n if_o they_o admit_v as_o a_o certain_a &_o infallible_a rule_n they_o be_v alij_fw-la be_v to_o this_o purpose_n they_o say_v so_o long_o as_o we_o stay_v upon_o the_o father_n we_o shall_v still_o continue_v in_o our_o old_a popish_a error_n peter_n martyr_n de_fw-fr votis_fw-la pag._n 476._o luther_n de_fw-fr ser●uo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la tom._n 2._o wittenberg_n pag._n 434._o pomeran_n in_o jonam_fw-la napier_n upon_o the_o revelation_n calius_n curio_n &_o alij_fw-la bring_v into_o strait_n and_o mighty_o press_v to_o receive_v many_o doctrine_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o be_v now_o resolute_a never_o to_o believe_v therefore_o to_o lay_v the_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n they_o will_v fain_o build_v their_o faith_n on_o a_o high_a ground_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n dark_o reveal_v to_o wit_n believe_v wit_n john_n white_a defence_n pag._n 309._o none_o can_v believe_v except_o god_n illuminate_v their_o heart_n but_o such_o as_o have_v this_o illumination_n do_v see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v on_o divine_a illumination_n whereby_o they_o see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v whereby_o they_o be_v rest_n be_v francis_n white_a orthodox_n pag._n 108._o add_v that_o protestant_n herein_o be_v like_a to_o a_o man_n that_o see_v a_o far_o off_o a_o obscure_a glimmer_n but_o come_v to_o the_o place_n behold_v the_o light_n itself_o and_o the_o same_o be_v teach_v by_o caluin_n institut_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 7._o n._n 2._o and_o the_o rest_n convict_v in_o conscience_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v divine_a by_o the_o lustre_n and_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o sense_v according_a unto_o their_o manner_n the_o former_a resolution_n confute_v by_o six_o argument_n §._o 2._o this_o pretence_n of_o resolution_n so_o much_o worth_n much_o pag._n 19_o lin_v 4._o &_o pag._n 28._o lin_v 3._o &_o ibid._n lin_v 28._o &_o pag._n 68_o lin_v 20._o the_o majesty_n and_o lustre_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n be_v such_o as_o it_o appear_v illustrious_a though_o propound_v by_o mean_a and_o obscure_a person_n as_o a_o rich_a jewel_n do_v manifest_v his_o own_o worth_n repeat_v by_o our_o minister_n in_o this_o reply_n be_v refell_v by_o 6._o argument_n as_o be_v extreme_o arrogant_a ignorant_a disorderly_a fond_a desperate_a the_o devise_n of_o satan_n the_o first_o argument_n first_o what_o more_o arrogant_a then_o to_o challenge_v ordinary_a illumination_n more_o high_a rare_a and_o excellent_a than_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o apostle_n though_o they_o have_v this_o privilege_n that_o christian_a religion_n be_v to_o they_o immediate_o reveal_v of_o god_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o see_v the_o resplendent_a verity_n &_o shi●ing_a truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o but_o see_v dark_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v not_o see_v as_o s._n paul_n do_v see_v do_v 1._o cor._n 13.12_o videmus_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_o speculo_fw-la in_o aenigmate_fw-la we_o see_v through_o a_o glass_n dark_o that_o be_v we_o be_v sure_a by_o believe_v god_n word_n of_o what_o we_o do_v not_o see_v testify_v therefore_o illumination_n show_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v challendged_a by_o protestant_n be_v more_o high_a rare_a and_o excellent_a light_n then_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v what_o great_a joan._n great_a innumerabiles_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la se_fw-la videntes_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la iactant_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o à_fw-la christo_fw-la illuminatos_fw-la videri_fw-la volunt_fw-la sunt_fw-la autem_fw-la haeretici_fw-la augustin_n tract_n 43._o in_o joan._n arrogancy_n swenkfeldian_o equal_v themselves_o unto_o the_o apostle_n pretend_v immediate_a revelation_n and_o teach_n from_o god_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v but_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v equal_v themselves_o unto_o the_o bless_a who_o happiness_n be_v to_o see_v 29._o see_v fides_n est_fw-la credere_fw-la quod_fw-la nondum_fw-la vides_fw-la cvius_fw-la fidei_fw-la merces_fw-la est_fw-la videre_fw-la quod_fw-la credis_fw-la augustin_n de_fw-fr verb._n apostol_n serm._n 29._o what_o we_o believe_v special_o see_v one_o point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n protestant_n pretend_v to_o see_v be_v the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o true_a light_n and_o resplendent_a verity_n whereof_o a_o man_n can_v see_v manifest_o without_o be_v bless_v the_o second_o argument_n second_o what_o great_a ignorance_n against_o the_o rudiment_n of_o christian_a religion_n then_o to_o resolve_v christian_a faith_n by_o the_o evidence_n and_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o
yet_o his_o doctrine_n be_v against_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o divines_n &_o express_o against_o s._n augustine_n who_o say_v that_o a_o man_n hold_v with_o photinus_n who_o error_n be_v fundamental_a against_o the_o trinity_n &_o god_n head_n of_o christ_n think_v he_o hold_v catholic_a doctrine_n be_v not_o yet_o a_o wilful_a a_o the_o minister_n say_v pa._n 196._o that_o the_o jesvite_n cite_v not_o augustine_n true_o for_o he_o only_o say_v i_o will_v not_o affirm_v of_o such_o a_o person_n that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n answer_n this_o be_v untruth_n s._n austin_n say_v istum_fw-la nondum_fw-la haereticum_fw-la dico_fw-la i_o do_v affirm_v this_o man_n not_o to_o be_v yet_o a_o heretic_n though_o he_o hold_v fundamental_a error_n till_o he_o know_v he_o do_v it_o against_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o he_o add_v that_o s._n austin_n mean_v that_o ignorance_n be_v not_o heresy_n in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o be_v heresy_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la be_v ridiculous_a for_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a because_o whosoever_o deny_v though_o ignorant_o the_o know_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v a_o heretic_n in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la because_o he_o be_v presume_v to_o err_v out_o of_o contempt_n not_o out_o of_o ignorance_n but_o if_o he_o be_v true_o ignorant_a he_o be_v no_o heretic_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la because_o very_o he_o be_v not_o wilful_a heretic_n till_o warn_v that_o he_o hold_v against_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o choose_v to_o persevere_v in_o his_o error_n hence_o i_o infer_v that_o protestant_n err_v fundamental_o according_a to_o the_o second_o kind_n of_o err_a to_o wit_n in_o the_o manner_n in_o all_o point_v they_o hold_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o i_o haved_z prove_v to_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o he_o that_o hold_v any_o private_a opinion_n so_o stiff_o as_o rather_o they_o forsake_v it_o he_o deny_v &_o abandon_v the_o catholic_a church_n a_o main_n article_n of_o his_o creed_n err_v fundamental_o as_o be_v clear_a but_o protestant_n hold_v their_o private_a opinion_n so_o stiff_o as_o thereupon_o they_o have_v deny_v and_o abandon_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o roman_a neither_o do_v it_o import_v that_o they_o retain_v the_o word_n have_v reject_v the_o sense_n see_v not_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o creed_n pronounce_v but_o the_o matter_n believe_v make_v man_n christian_n neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o the_o elect_n see_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o only_a elect_n a_o mere_a fancy_n but_o the_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a church_n continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n which_o thus_o i_o prove_v the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o the_o church_n which_o to_o forsake_v be_v damnable_a for_o the_o church_n wherewith_o christ_n still_o abide_v not_o according_a to_o corporal_a &_o visible_a presence_n but_o by_o his_o spirit_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n into_o which_o he_o infuse_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n &_o consequent_o he_o that_o forsake_v this_o church_n forsake_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o head_n thereof_o and_o can_v live_v by_o his_o spirit_n but_o be_v in_o a_o dead_a and_o damnable_a state_n as_o a_o member_n cut_v off_o and_o separate_v from_o a_o live_a body_n as_o s._n augustine_n epist_n 50._o &_o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles._n c._n 16._o long_v ago_o note_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n out_o of_o this_o body_n the_o holy_a ghost_n quicken_v not_o man_n now_o the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o the_o church_n invisible_a of_o only_a the_o elect_n but_o a_o visible_a church_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o he_o that_o forsake_v the_o church_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n forsake_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o catholic_a church_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o put_v himself_o into_o a_o dead_a &_o damnable_a state_n &_o may_v have_v all_o thing_n beside_o salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n as_o father_n affirm_v who_o testimony_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v notable_a and_o famous_o know_v whereunto_o d._n field_n yield_v acknowlege_v one_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o which_o only_o the_o light_n of_o heavenly_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v where_o only_a grace_n mercy_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o hope_v of_o eternal_a happiness_n be_v find_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o nine_o point_n propose_v by_o your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n i_o have_v be_v large_a in_o my_o former_a proof_n that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a true_a catholic_a church_n who_o tradition_n come_v down_o by_o perpetual_a succession_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a apostle_n be_v so_o constant_o and_o strong_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o no_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n by_o private_a interpretation_n understand_v though_o seem_v most_o evident_a may_v stand_v to_o contest_v faith_n contest_v the_o minister_n here_o spend_v a_o whole_a leaf_n of_o paper_n in_o bitterness_n &_o gall_n against_o we_o as_o if_o we_o do_v profess_v to_o prefer_v old_a custom_n before_o know_a verity_n it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o thus_o the_o case_n stand_v between_o protestant_n and_o us._n first_o as_o for_o verity_n neither_o they_o nor_o we_o know_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v verity_n by_o manifest_a sight_n nor_o by_o the_o light_n lustre_n &_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n or_o doctrine_n as_o both_o of_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v if_o we_o be_v sober_a second_o there_o be_v record_n which_o by_o tradition_n we_o know_v to_o have_v be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o upon_o good_a warrant_n be_v believe_v to_o deliver_v nothing_o but_o god_n holy_a word_n three_o when_o controversy_n arise_v about_o this_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o there_o be_v different_a opinion_n about_o the_o sense_n thereof_o &_o seem_a argument_n be_v bring_v on_o both_o side_n we_o think_v that_o side_n ought_v to_o prevail_v as_o the_o true_o christian_a for_o which_o perpetual_a christian_a tradition_n &_o custom_n stand_v fourtly_n we_o judge_v that_o that_o side_n ought_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o not_o true_o christian_a where_o christian_a tradition_n be_v so_o notorios_o defective_a as_o they_o can_v ascend_v from_o this_o age_n upward_o towards_o christ_n by_o name_v professor_n of_o their_o religion_n high_a than_o one_o hundred_o year_n or_o if_o they_o presume_v to_o pass_v further_o they_o be_v present_o convince_v to_o feign_v as_o it_o happen_v unto_o protestant_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o catholic_a proceed_v about_o their_o resolution_n of_o faith_n against_o they_o and_o this_o i_o have_v not_o do_v without_o purpose_n assure_v myself_o that_o if_o your_o majesty_n be_v thorough_o persuade_v in_o this_o point_n you_o will_v without_o any_o man_n help_n most_o easy_o and_o full_o satisfy_v yourself_o in_o particular_a controversye_n out_o of_o your_o own_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n for_o as_o some_o that_o have_v be_v present_a at_o your_o majesty_n discourse_n casual_o incident_a about_o religion_n report_n few_o of_o our_o divines_n though_o train_v up_o continual_o in_o academy_n and_o exercise_n of_o theology_n be_v able_a to_o say_v more_o them_z your_o majesty_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_a cause_n for_o particular_a controversye_n when_o you_o please_v to_o undertake_v the_o patronage_n thereof_o which_o i_o can_v easy_o believe_v out_o of_o my_o own_o experience_n who_o can_v not_o but_o admire_v see_v your_o majesty_n so_o well_o acquaint_v with_o our_o doctrine_n and_o so_o ready_a and_o prompt_a in_o scholastical_a subtlety_n wherefore_o most_o humble_o i_o beseech_v your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o honour_v these_o my_o poor_a labour_n with_o a_o gracious_a perusal_n of_o they_o accept_v of_o my_o answer_n when_o they_o may_v seem_v reasonable_a be_v in_o defence_n of_o doctrine_n receive_v from_o ancestor_n which_o deserve_v approbation_n when_o there_o be_v no_o evidency_n against_o they_o and_o of_o your_o abundant_a clemency_n pardon_v my_o prolixity_n see_v the_o question_n by_o your_o majesty_n propose_v be_v so_o difficile_a and_o obscure_a as_o i_o can_v hardly_o have_v make_v any_o short_a full_a explication_n of_o they_o the_o first_o point_n the_o air_n the_o the_o minister_n in_o this_o question_n know_v not_o well_o what_o to_o stand_v unto_o he_o grant_n the_o question_n and_o then_o he_o deny_v it_o again_o contradict_v himself_o yea_o censure_a his_o own_o whole_a
as_o refer_v unto_o the_o image_n otherwise_o if_o m._n white_n shall_v help_v to_o pull_v his_o fellow-minister_n horse_n out_o of_o the_o mire_n move_v thereunto_o out_o of_o christian_n charity_n and_o friendship_n one_o may_v by_o the_o like_a argument_n prove_v that_o he_o bear_v christian_n charity_n towards_o horse_n for_o he_o relive_v the_o horse_n and_o pleasure_v his_o friend_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o act_n the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o friend_n be_v a_o act_n of_o christian_n charity_n towards_o he_o ergo_fw-la the_o pullinge_n of_o the_o horse_n out_o of_o the_o mire_n be_v a_o act_n of_o christian_n charity_n towards_o the_o horse_n a_o foolish_a argument_n because_o that_o one_o act_n be_v virtual_o twofold_a as_o refer_v to_o the_o man_n owner_n of_o the_o horse_n christian_n charity_n as_o refer_v to_o the_o horse_n only_o no_o charity_n at_o all_o but_o a_o base_a kind_n of_o love_n and_o that_o for_o his_o friend_n sake_n the_o like_a be_v when_o we_o kiss_v with_o our_o corporal_a lip_n the_o foot_n of_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o devout_a and_o reverend_a imagination_n kiss_v his_o true_a foot_n represent_v by_o the_o image_n we_o honour_v christ_n &_o his_o image_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o physical_a act_n and_o that_o act_n be_v divine_a worship_n though_o not_o divine_a as_o refer_v to_o the_o image_n but_o only_o as_o refer_v unto_o christ._n a_o thing_n so_o easy_o understand_v by_o learned_a man_n as_o i_o marvel_v minister_n understand_v it_o not_o or_o wrangle_v in_o a_o matter_n so_o clear_a if_o they_o sincere_o seek_v truth_n and_o though_o the_o ignorant_a understand_v not_o the_o term_n of_o theology_n by_o which_o divine_v declare_v the_o manner_n of_o honour_v the_o prototype_n and_o the_o image_n both_o by_o one_o act_n yet_o may_v they_o honour_v a_o image_n as_o secure_o &_o with_o as_o little_a danger_n of_o err_v as_o any_o that_o understand_v they_o for_o as_o the_o clown_n who_o know_v no_o more_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o motion_n then_o that_o he_o be_v to_o set_v one_o foot_n before_o another_o do_v move_v in_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n as_o philosopher_n who_o explicate_v that_o action_n by_o term_n most_o obscure_a of_o intrinsical_v and_o extrinsecall_v beginning_n and_o end_v and_o per_fw-la ultimum_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o primum_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la so_o likewise_o a_o catholic_a that_o understand_v no_o more_o of_o honour_v christ_n his_o image_n then_o that_o he_o be_v by_o behold_v the_o image_n to_o remember_v christ_n and_o with_o pious_a &_o affectuous_a imagination_n to_o adore_v he_o do_v honour_v our_o saviour_n &_o his_o image_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o act_n as_o true_o very_o &_o religious_o as_o the_o great_a divine_a that_o can_v learned_o explicate_v the_o manner_n how_o that_o adoration_n be_v perform_v as_o be_v do_v outward_o relative_o and_o transitory_o unto_o the_o image_n affectuous_o absolute_o final_o unto_o christ._n second_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a bring_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n yet_o forbid_v that_o any_o image_n shall_v be_v adore_v with_o divine_a honour_n he_o both_o contradict_v himself_o and_o utter_v another_o manifest_a falsehood_n he_o contradict_v himself_o in_o say_v that_o the_o nicene_n council_n forbid_v divine_a worship_n of_o any_o image_n see_v in_o another_o place_n he_o thus_o write_v defence_n pag._n 453._o both_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o divines_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o cross_n must_v be_v adore_v with_o divine_a adoration_n brother_n adoration_n the_o minister_n have_v not_o a_o word_n to_o say_v in_o excuse_n of_o this_o contradiction_n and_o falsehood_n of_o his_o brother_n it_o be_v apparent_o false_a that_o the_o say_v nicene_n council_n bring_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n which_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o many_o testimony_n but_o this_o one_o may_v suffice_v iconum_fw-la suffice_v zonara_n in_o leone_n isaurico_fw-la &_o paulus_n diaconus_fw-la in_o miscella_fw-la lib._n 21._o accusabat_fw-la omnes_fw-la antecessores_fw-la principes_fw-la quasi_fw-la idololatrae_fw-la fuissent_fw-la propter_fw-la adorationem_fw-la sanctarum_fw-la iconum_fw-la that_o leo_n isauricus_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a oppose_a image-worshippe_n not_o as_o then_o beginning_n but_o for_o many_o year_n before_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n boast_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n the_o rest_n have_v be_v idolator_n because_o they_o worship_v image_n so_o manifest_o do_v he_o oppose_v antiquity_n and_o so_o little_a truth_n there_o be_v in_o m._n whites_n image_n whites_n the_o minister_n say_v that_o the_o nicene_n synod_n bring_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o worship_v of_o image_n by_o definition_n not_o simple_o for_o the_o israelite_n worship_v melt_v image_n in_o dan_n and_o bethel_n and_o the_o symonian_o worship_v image_n euseb._n eccles._n historia_n lib._n 2._o c._n 13._o the_o gnostic_n worship_v the_o image_n of_o christ._n ●ren_n l._n 1._o c._n 13._o answer_n by_o this_o may_v appear_v that_o so_o you_o satisfy_v your_o spleen_n ●n_o compare_v we_o to_o idolater_n you_o care_v not_o how_o little_a you_o speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n the_o question_n be_v who_o first_o bring_v in_o the_o worship_n that_o for_o many_o age_n have_v be_v use_v universal_o by_o christian_n towards_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n you_o answer_v not_o the_o nicene_n synod_n simple_o but_o ●efore_o that_o council_n the_o israelite_n worship_v melt_v image_n in_o dan_n &_o ●e●hel_n and_o the_o synomians_n worship_v image_n to_o wit_n of_o simon_n magus_n and_o ●elen_fw-mi his_o strumpet_n be_v these_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o bless_a mother_n the_o gnostic_n also_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o paul_n sacrifice_v unto_o it_o and_o not_o only_o unto_o it_o but_o also_o with_o it_o unto_o the_o image_n of_o homer_n pythagoras_n plato_n aristotle_n and_o other_o profane_a man_n as_o irenaeus_n relate●_n li._n 2._o c._n 24._o and_o epiphan_n heres_fw-la 27._o the_o like_a do_v marcellina_n note_v by_o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la haeres_fw-la 23._o be_v this_o the_o catholic_a custom_n of_o worship_v image_n assertion_n three_o to_o pass_v yet_o up_o high_o that_o image_n begin_v in_o gregory_n the_o great_a his_o time_n and_o that_o he_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o they_o contain_v other_o three_o falsehood_n first_o gregory_n be_v abuse_v who_o only_o person_n only_o what_o the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 248._o lin_v 2d_o that_o gregory_n do_v not_o approve_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v worship_v any_o way_n be_v not_o only_o against_o friar_n bale_n but_o also_o against_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o gregory_n who_o say_v express_o lib._n 7._o epist._n 5._o that_o worship_n or_o veneration_n be_v due_a to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n wherefore_o when_o elswher_o lib._n 7._o epist._n 10.11_o he_o say_v that_o image_n be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v adore_v this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a as_o himself_o expound_v himself_o l._n 7._o epist._n 53._o non_fw-la tanquam_fw-la deus_fw-la image_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v as_o god_n and_o again_o we_o prostrate_v ourselves_o before_o the_o image_n not_o as_o before_o the_o deity_n but_o we_o adore_v he_o who_o by_o his_o image_n we_o remember_v as_o bear_v or_o as_o crucify_a or_o as_o sit_v in_o glory_n where_o he_o teach_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o 〈◊〉_d must_v prostrate_v ourselves_o before_o our_o saviour_n image_n second_o that_o 〈◊〉_d hart_n and_o affection_n we_o must_v worship_v the_o divine_a sampler_n our_o savio●●_n person_n command_v that_o none_o shall_v worship_v image_n as_o god_n believe_v as_o gentile_n do_v that_o some_o godhead_n be_v affix_v to_o they_o as_o he_o elsewhere_o declare_v colas_fw-la declare_v lib._n 7._o ep_n 53._o non_fw-la ut_fw-la eam_fw-la tanquam_fw-la deum_fw-la colas_fw-la himself_o and_o so_o manifest_o do_v he_o teach_v image-worship_n establish_v pilgrimage_n unto_o they_o by_o indulgence_n as_o 57_o as_o bale_n pag●●_n of_o pope_n pag._n 24._o &_o 25._o symonds_n on_o the_o revelation_n pag._n 57_o friar_n bale_n accuse_v he_o thereof_o yea_o m._n symonds_n and_o m._n bale_n write_v tha●_n leo_n 140._o year_n before_o gregory_n decree●_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n second_o polidore_n in_o this_o point_n be_v egregious_o falsify_v for_o he_o say_v not_o as_o the_o minister_n make_v he_o speak_v all_o father_n condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n 〈◊〉_d idolatry_n but_o his_o word_n be_v cultum_fw-la imagnum_fw-la testae_fw-la hieronymo_n omnes_fw-la veteres_fw-la patr●_n damnabant_fw-la metu_fw-la idololatriae_fw-la all_o old_a father_n as_o hierome_n witness_v do_v condemn_v worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n by_o the_o
christian_n behave_v themselves_o towards_o it_o say_v flecte_fw-la genus_fw-la lignumque_fw-la crucis_fw-la venerabile_fw-la adora_fw-la bow_v knee_n adore_v the_o cross_n sacred_a wood_n origen_n homil._n 6._o in_o epist._n ad_fw-la rom._n so_o great_a be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o if_o it_o be_v place_v before_o the_o eye_n and_o faithful_o retain_v in_o mind_n fix_v upon_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o army_n of_o sin_n &_o flesh_n be_v conquer_v s._n gregory_n call_v illuminator_fw-la who_o convert_v armenia_n do_v as_o euthim._n panop_n part_n 3._o tit_n 20._o relate_v place_v wooden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o the_o shrine_n of_o martyr_n bid_v the_o multitude_n of_o people_n that_o thither_o resort_v to_o give_v worship_n unto_o god_n by_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o crosse._n s._n procopius_n martyr_n as_o do_v witness_n nicephorus_n l._n 7._o c._n 15._o do_v adore_v a_o golden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n crucify_v &_o by_o it_o get_v great_a victory_n in_o the_o second_o age_n in_o the_o beginning_n whereof_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n live_v tertull._n in_o apol._n c._n 44._o writing_n against_o heathen_n that_o object_v that_o christian_n be_v worshipper_n of_o the_o wooden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n grant_n the_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a &_o defend_v the_o same_o yea_o the_o protestant_a magdeburgians_n centur._n 5._o c._n 6._o acknowledge_v that_o such_o cross_n of_o wood_n be_v then_o among_o christian_n frequent_o use_v &_o set_v up_o in_o church_n s._n ignatius_n epist_n ad_fw-la philip._n do_v acknowledge_v divine_a power_n &_o virtue_n in_o the_o image_n of_o the_o crosse._n it_o be_v say_v he_o the_o victorious_a trophy_n or_o the_o monument_n of_o christ_n victory_n against_o the_o devil_n quod_fw-la ubi_fw-la viderit_fw-la horret_fw-la s._n martial_a epist._n ad_fw-la burdeg_n l._n 8._o exhort_v christian_n still_o to_o have_v the_o cross_n before_o they_o in_o ment_fw-la in_o over_o in_fw-la signo_fw-la in_o mind_n in_o mouth_n in_o the_o image_n thereof_o this_o be_v the_o invincible_a armour_n of_o a_o christian_a against_o satan_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v ever_o famous_a in_o the_o christian_a church_n whereof_o one_o be_v cite_v in_o 2._o nicen_n synod_n which_o say_v let_v not_o the_o faithful_a be_v deceyve_v by_o idol_n but_o paint_v the_o divine_a humane_a unmingled_a image_n of_o the_o true_a god_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n &_o of_o his_o servant_n against_o pagan_n &_o jew_n that_o so_o they_o neither_o go_v astray_o unto_o idol_n nor_o be_v like_o the_o jew_n final_o that_o these_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_v be_v use_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n by_o their_o allowance_n the_o jesuite_n prove_v by_o the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o 3.1_o so_o clear_o as_o you_o be_v force_v to_o say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o signify_v to_o depaint_v against_o all_o lexicon_n against_o the_o principal_a protestant_n that_o so_o translate_v yea_o against_o yourself_o and_o yet_o you_o wonder_v at_o your_o adversary_n wondrous_a weakness_n the_o second_o and_z third_z point_n 2._o praying_n &_o offer_v oblation_n to_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n 3._o worship_v &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n i_o have_v join_v these_o two_o controversye_n together_o hope_v i_o may_v do_v it_o with_o your_o majesty_n good_a like_n the_o main_a difficulty_n of_o they_o both_o be_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n for_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v that_o if_o your_o majesty_n do_v allow_v of_o invocation_n of_o any_o saint_n you_o will_v never_o deny_v that_o devotion_n unto_o the_o b._n virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n 402._o opera_fw-la regius_fw-la respon_n ad_fw-la ep_n card._n peron_n p._n 402._o who_o you_o honour_v and_o reverence_n above_o the_o rest_n though_o perchance_o you_o may_v dislike_v some_o particular_a form_n of_o our_o prayer_n that_o seem_v to_o give_v her_o title_n above_o that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o a_o creature_n about_o which_o i_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n endeavour_v to_o give_v your_o majesty_n satisfaction_n in_o which_o question_n i_o will_v suppose_v without_o large_a and_o particular_a proof_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v it_o by_o testimony_n undeniable_a if_o need_v be_v that_o worship_n &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n have_v be_v general_o receive_v in_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n at_o least_o ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n here_o the_o minister_n either_o out_o of_o ignorance_n or_o rather_o out_o of_o desire_n to_o outface_v the_o truth_n write_v in_o this_o sort_n pag._n 290._o you_o presuppose_v that_o which_o notwithstanding_o your_o outface_v you_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v universal_o receive_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n faith_n this_o discourse_n follow_v be_v a_o addition_n wherein_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n thus_o he_o wherefore_o aswell_o because_o the_o matter_n be_v important_a as_o also_o to_o take_v away_o this_o tergiversation_n i_o will_v here_o make_v good_a the_o answerers_n word_n and_o demonstrate_v that_o all_o the_o father_n some_o one_o way_n some_o another_o have_v testify_v to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n a_o eleven_o demonstration_n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_a church_n do_v ever_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n §_o 1._o to_o accomplish_v this_o more_o clear_o and_o with_o less_o tediousness_n unto_o the_o reader_n i_o shall_v reduce_v the_o father_n say_v unto_o a_o eleven_o head_n &_o which_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o eleven_o different_a argument_n &_o demonstration_n of_o this_o truth_n the_o first_o demonstration_n if_o the_o father_n hold_v the_o doctrine_n that_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v invocate_v &_o that_o man_n be_v aid_v by_o their_o merit_n as_o certain_a &_o infallible_a than_o they_o hold_v it_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o reveal_v truth_n for_o on_o what_o other_o ground_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v they_o pretend_v to_o hold_v it_o as_o certain_a the_o same_o not_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o father_n teach_v this_o doctrine_n as_o a_o matter_n certain_a and_o infallible_a &_o not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o by_o christian_n as_o their_o word_n declare_v s_o augustine_n adiwari_fw-la augustine_n augustine_n de_fw-fr cur●_n pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la cap._n 16._o illa_fw-la quaestio_fw-la vires_fw-la superat_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la meae_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la martyr_n opitulentur_fw-la ijs_fw-la quos_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la certum_fw-la est_fw-la adiwari_fw-la this_o question_n be_v beyond_o the_o reach_n of_o my_o knowledge_n how_o martyr_n help_v they_o who_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o help_v and_o again_o intercedunt_fw-la again_o idem_fw-la serm_n 244._o tunc_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la absque_fw-la ulla_fw-la dubitatione_n sancti_fw-la martyr_n intercedunt_fw-la then_o without_o any_o doubt_n the_o holy_a martyr_n intercede_v for_o we_o when_o they_o find_v in_o we_o some_o part_n of_o their_o virtue_n s._n ambrose_n facietis_fw-la ambrose_n ambros._n ser._n 91._o quid_fw-la non_fw-la credunt_fw-la utrum_fw-la quòd_fw-la à_fw-la martyribus_fw-la possunt_fw-la aliqui_fw-la visitari_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la christo_fw-la now_o credere_fw-la ipse_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la et_fw-la maiora_fw-la his_fw-la facietis_fw-la not_o to_o believe_v that_o martyr_n may_v visit_v and_o relieve_v man_n live_v in_o this_o world_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n see_v he_o say_v you_o shall_v do_v yet_o great_a thing_n nectarius_n speak_v unto_o saint_n theodore_n martyr_n tuis_fw-la martyr_n nectar_n orat_fw-la in_o primum_fw-la sabb._n sanctorum_fw-la jeiuniorum_fw-la in_o s._n theodorum_fw-la te_fw-la post_fw-la mortem_fw-la vivere_fw-la credimus_fw-la ut_fw-la ergo_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la vivis_fw-la &_o stas_fw-la prope_fw-la eum_fw-la precibus_fw-la tuis_fw-la propitium_fw-la eum_fw-la red_a famulis_fw-la tuis_fw-la we_o believe_v that_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o god_n a_o life_n without_o decay_n or_o end_n therefore_o as_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o christ_n &_o stand_v by_o he_o so_o make_v he_o by_o thy_o prayer_n propitious_a &_o merciful_a unto_o we_o thy_o servant_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o as_o certain_o as_o saint_n see_v god_n so_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o they_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o hear_v our_o prayer_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n doctrinâ_fw-la nazianzen_n gregory_n nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 26._o in_o patrem_fw-la suum_fw-la apostolium_n ferè_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la nec_fw-la dubito_fw-la quin_fw-la hoc_fw-la nunc_fw-la quoque_fw-la magis_fw-la faciat_fw-la postulatione_fw-la sva_fw-la quam_fw-la priùs_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o this_o bless_a saint_n in_o
11.1_o ad_fw-la cor._n i_o hear_v say_v he_o what_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n import_n for_o christ_n do_v give_v we_o not_o only_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n but_o also_o the_o very_a body_n wherein_o he_o die_v and_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n yea_o libro_fw-la de_fw-la coena_fw-la inter_fw-la eius_fw-la opuscula_fw-la pag._n 133._o he_o say_v that_o negare_fw-la veram_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la substantiam_fw-la to_o deny_v the_o true_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v give_v in_o the_o supper_n be_v execrabilis_fw-la blasphemia_fw-la auditu_fw-la indigna_fw-es a_o execrable_a blasphemy_n against_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o stop_v our_o ear_n the_o caluinian_a doctrine_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v only_o in_o heaven_n be_v spiritual_o present_a not_o only_o by_o faith_n not_o only_o according_a to_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o grace_n but_o also_o in_o his_o bodily_a substance_n yet_o only_o unto_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n not_o unto_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n be_v both_o against_o god_n word_n and_o implicatory_a in_o reason_n first_o it_o be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o zuinglian_n against_o the_o plain_a &_o express_v word_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o our_o saviour_n by_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n matth._n 26._o do_v aver_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o take_n and_o eat_v unto_o which_o by_o these_o word_n he_o do_v invite_v and_o exhort_v but_o by_o this_o speech_n he_o do_v invite_v and_o exhort_v unto_o sacramental_a and_o corporal_a take_n and_o eat_v this_o appear_v by_o the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n take_v the_o sacrament_n with_o their_o corporal_a mouth_n this_o also_o our_o adversaries_n can_v deny_v see_v they_o urge_v by_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n corporal_a receive_v in_o both_o kind_n therefore_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n aver_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n in_o substance_n in_o respect_n of_o corporal_a take_n and_o eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o flesh_n which_o doctrine_n caluinist_n stiff_o deny_v only_o hold_v the_o substantial_a communication_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o respect_n of_o spiritual_a receive_n by_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n second_o their_o real_a presence_n be_v a_o fiction_n to_o no_o purpose_n for_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o put_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o verify_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n in_o a_o true_a and_o real_a sense_n so_o make_v the_o thing_n christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o which_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o pronowne_a this_o to_o be_v true_o &_o real_o his_o body_n but_o caluinist_n put_v not_o a_o presence_n which_o make_v the_o thing_n christ_n have_v in_o hand_n and_o demonstrate_v by_o the_o pronowne_a this_o to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o his_o body_n but_o only_o by_o figure_n this_o i_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o figure_n and_o show_v and_o not_o in_o substance_n be_v not_o true_o &_o real_o christ_n his_o body_n even_o as_o what_o be_v a_o man_n in_o show_n and_o figure_n not_o in_o essence_n and_o substance_n be_v not_o true_o and_o real_o a_o man_n but_o caluinist_n say_v that_o this_o or_o the_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n be_v christ_n body_n in_o show_n &_o figure_n and_o not_o in_o substance_n ergo_fw-la they_o put_v not_o a_o real_a presence_n which_o make_v that_o which_o christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n &_o do_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o particle_n this_o to_o be_v true_o his_o body_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o fiction_n devise_v to_o satisfy_v the_o caluinian_a fancy_n not_o the_o christian_a faith_n or_o the_o rigurous_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n three_o by_o this_o doctrine_n they_o bound_v themselves_o and_o other_o to_o believe_v a_o high_a and_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n without_o any_o necessity_n or_o compulsion_n from_o god_n word_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o unintelligible_a then_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v true_a and_o real_a union_n according_a to_o substance_n betwixt_o two_o distinct_a individual_a substance_n that_o be_v distant_a the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o as_o far_o as_o heaven_n be_v from_o earth_n hence_o caluin_n say_v libro_fw-la de_fw-la coena_fw-la that_o this_o be_v sublime_a &_o arduum_fw-la quod_fw-la neque_fw-la quidem_fw-la cogitation_n complecti_fw-la possimus_fw-la &_o in_o cap._n 11.1_o ad_fw-la cor._n arcanum_fw-la &_o mirificum_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la opus_fw-la quod_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la modulo_fw-la metiri_fw-la nefas_fw-la sit_fw-la but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o enforce_v this_o caluinian_a mystery_n nor_o be_v there_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o affirm_v it_o this_o be_v prove_v because_o the_o mystery_n of_o their_o real_a presence_n either_o have_v no_o ground_n in_o scripture_n or_o be_v ground_v on_o these_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o caluinist_n on_o these_o word_n can_v ground_v the_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n of_o their_o real_a presence_n for_o they_o understand_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o figurative_a sense_n and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o true_a proper_o and_o literal_o now_o a_o mystery_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v ground_v upon_o the_o figurative_a sense_n of_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n yea_o upon_o mere_a figurative_a construction_n of_o scripture_n to_o obtrude_v unto_o other_o a_o article_n of_o necessary_a belief_n be_v impudence_n as_o say_v s._n augustine_n epist._n 68_o non_fw-la nisi_fw-la impudentiss_fw-la mè_fw-la nititur_fw-la quis_fw-la aliquid_fw-la in_o allegoria_fw-la positum_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la interpretari_fw-la nisi_fw-la habeat_fw-la &_o manifesta_fw-la testimonia_fw-la quorum_fw-la lumine_fw-la illustrentur_fw-la obscura_fw-la therefore_o the_o caluinian_a real_a presence_n be_v a_o mystery_n incomprehensible_a ground_v on_o mere_a figurative_a construction_n of_o god_n word_n not_o back_v by_o any_o literal_a text_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v believe_v without_o necessity_n or_o any_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a warrant_n hence_o i_o infer_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o caluinian_a real_a presence_n be_v unwise_a for_o what_o great_a folly_n then_o for_o man_n to_o deny_v their_o wit_n and_o break_v their_o head_n to_o believe_v a_o hard_a and_o difficile_a matter_n in_o believe_v whereof_o there_o be_v no_o merit_n of_o faith_n in_o believe_v the_o caluinian_a real_a presence_n there_o be_v no_o merit_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o captivate_v our_o understanding_n unto_o mysterye_n clear_o deliver_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o unto_o man_n figurative_a exposition_n thereof_o yea_o no_o figurative_a exposition_n above_o reason_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v except_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o some_o literal_a text_n or_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o full_a tradition_n as_o god_n word_n unwritten_a second_o i_o infer_v that_o caluinist_n bear_v more_o reverence_n unto_o john_n caluin_n then_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n for_o caluins_n mystery_n be_v believe_v by_o caluinist_n be_v confess_o a_o doctrine_n most_o hard_o difficile_a incomprehensible_a and_o yet_o not_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n but_o caluin_n figurative_a comment_n thereupon_a on_o the_o other_o side_n transubstantiation_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o they_o to_o be_v the_o literal_a and_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n jesus_n so_o that_o without_o transubstantiation_n his_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v literal_o true_a as_o our_o minister_n do_v confess_v pag._n 397._o yet_o because_o it_o be_v hard_a difficile_a incomprehensible_a caluinist_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o believe_v it_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o believe_v caluin_n then_o christ_n special_o see_v the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n literal_a sense_n be_v not_o so_o hard_a and_o un-intelligible_a as_o caluins_n figurative_a construction_n for_o one_o may_n more_o easy_o conceive_v a_o body_n to_o be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o which_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n do_v enforce_v than_o a_o body_n to_o be_v true_o and_o substantial_o give_v where_o true_o and_o substantial_o it_o be_v not_o which_o be_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n by_o caluin_n figurative_a construction_n obtrude_v the_o argument_n against_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n vain_a and_o idle_a §._o 3._o the_o minister_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n be_v to_o be_v figurative_o understand_v bring_v seven_o argument_n pag._n 391._o &_o one_o pag._n 401._o and_o three_o other_o pag._n 418._o but_o the_o first_o and_o three_o of_o these_o three_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o second_o
for_o their_o horse_n against_o which_o edict_n when_o one_o of_o his_o soldier_n have_v transgress_v he_o give_v order_n he_o shall_v be_v punish_v say_v what_o hope_n of_o victory_n if_o we_o offend_v saint_n martin_n hence_o his_o enterprise_n be_v so_o fortunate_a &_o illustrate_v by_o wonderful_a event_n a_o stag_n go_v before_o his_o army_n show_v where_o they_o may_v wade_v over_o the_o river_n of_o vienne_n then_o so_o swell_v with_o water_n as_o it_o be_v not_o passable_a but_o only_o in_o that_o place_n be_v in_o the_o field_n near_o unto_o poytiers_n where_o saint_n hilaryes_fw-mi body_n be_v honour_v pharus_n ignea_fw-la a_o tower_n of_o light_n come_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n shine_v upon_o the_o king_n whereby_o encourage_v he_o win_v a_o a_o most_o glorious_a day_n slay_v the_o heretical_a usurper_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n deliver_v the_o flourish_a part_n of_o france_n from_o the_o arian_n tyranny_n in_o his_o return_n acknowledge_v the_o victory_n get_v by_o saint_n martin_n intercession_n he_o offer_v unto_o he_o his_o warlike_a palfree_n whereon_o he_o have_v fight_v so_o glorious_o redeem_v the_o same_o afterward_o with_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n pepinus_fw-la who_o join_v a_o great_a part_n of_o germany_n that_o then_o be_v pagan_a unto_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n have_v great_a confidence_n of_o victory_n in_o his_o devout_a invocation_n of_o saint_n then_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o army_n hence_o have_v in_o a_o fierce_a battle_n with_o the_o saxon_n obtain_v a_o glorious_a victory_n his_o weary_a and_o wound_a army_n be_v present_o set_v upon_o by_o a_o fresh_a mighty_a band_n of_o infidel_n s._n ludgerus_fw-la in_o aquavitae_fw-la s._n swiberts_n he_o light_v from_o his_o horse_n prostrate_v on_o the_o ground_n make_v a_o vow_n unto_o god_n and_o unto_o saint_n swibert_n to_o visit_v his_o relic_n with_o his_o whole_a army_n barefoot_a upon_o which_o vow_n straightways_o a_o wonderful_a light_n from_o heaven_n shine_v over_o he_o and_o his_o force_n that_o the_o pagan_n terrify_v therewith_o without_o fight_v yield_v themselves_o and_o their_o whole_a country_n of_o westphalia_n to_o his_o obedience_n as_o almost_o all_o book_n be_v full_a of_o the_o victory_n of_o charles_n the_o first_o of_o france_n surname_v the_o great_a so_o likewise_o they_o make_v full_a record_n of_o his_o singular_a reverence_n unto_o the_o roman_a bishop_n in_o who_o defence_n he_o fight_v so_o many_o victorious_a field_n special_o against_o the_o longobard_n who_o irreligion_n towards_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n the_o principal_a sea_n the_o fountain_n of_o christian_a unity_n wrought_v in_o the_o end_n the_o total_a sigon_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la ital._n l._n 3._o &_o 4._o subversion_n of_o their_o kingdom_n after_o the_o empire_n be_v translate_v from_o the_o frank_n unto_o the_o saxon_n who_o more_o va●iant_a and_o victorious_a than_o henry_n surname_v the_o falconer_n the_o first_o emperor_n of_o that_o stock_n be_v sick_a and_o so_o weak_a as_o he_o can_v hardly_o hold_v himself_o on_o his_o horse_n he_o dare_v in_o person_n go_v into_o the_o field_n against_o the_o mighty_a army_n of_o hun_n that_o ever_o enter_v germany_n witich_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr reb_n saxon_n frodoar_v chron._n eccles_n rhem._n luitprand_fw-fr l._n 2._o c._n 8._o &_o 9_o nauclerus_fw-la in_o chron._n gen._n 31._o à_fw-la christo_fw-la nato_fw-la so_o many_o in_o number_n and_o so_o confident_a in_o their_o force_n as_o they_o dare_v brag_v they_o can_v not_o be_v overcome_v except_o either_o the_o earth_n shall_v sink_v under_o they_o or_o the_o heaven_n fall_n upon_o they_o the_o king_n and_o his_o soldier_n fight_v valiant_o but_o pray_v no_o less_o devout_o the_o king_n make_v often_o vow_n unto_o god_n to_o root_v simony_n out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n do_v he_o win_v the_o day_n the_o soldier_n often_o repeat_v kyrie_fw-la eleyson_fw-la kyrie_fw-la eleyson_fw-la by_o the_o devout_a ingemination_n of_o which_o christian_n litany_n against_o the_o hunnish_v hui_o hui_o hui_o they_o get_v the_o victory_n make_v manifest_a how_o great_a be_v the_o force_n of_o prayer_n though_o in_o a_o language_n not_o vulgar_o know_v for_o the_o victory_n be_v so_o illustrious_a as_o in_o respect_n thereof_o the_o say_a emperor_n become_v renown_v admire_a &_o honour_v of_o all_o christian_a prince_n otho_n the_o great_a as_o in_o piety_n and_o devotion_n so_o likewise_o for_o admire_a victory_n be_v nothing_o inferior_a unto_o the_o foresay_a henry_n his_o father_n he_o witichind_a lib._n 1._o luitprandus_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 11._o &_o 12._o naucler_n in_o chron_n generate_v à_fw-la christo_fw-la 32._o part_n 2._o pag._n 82._o much_o honour_v the_o holy_a lance_n make_v of_o the_o sacred_a nail_n of_o our_o saviour_n cross_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o he_o overcome_v miraculous_o a_o immense_a army_n of_o hungarian_n who_o then_o be_v pagan_n &_o mighty_a troop_n of_o rebel_n that_o be_v join_v against_o he_o be_v on_o the_o one_o side_n of_o the_o rhine_n and_o the_o rebel_n on_o the_o other_o a_o few_o of_o his_o soldier_n without_o his_o privity_n pass_v the_o river_n fall_v into_o the_o enemy_n hand_n the_o pious_a emperor_n see_v they_o in_o distress_n and_o not_o able_a to_o succour_v they_o move_v with_o compassion_n prostrate_v himself_o his_o whole_a army_n do_v the_o like_a before_o the_o holy_a lance_n with_o many_o tear_n pray_v unto_o our_o saviour_n who_o hand_n and_o foot_n have_v be_v pierce_v with_o those_o sacred_a nail_n no_o soon_o be_v he_o prostrate_v on_o the_o ground_n but_o present_o the_o rebel_n no_o man_n know_v why_o run_v away_o their_o heart_n inward_o consume_v with_o fear_n so_o that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v kill_v &_o take_v prisoner_n by_o the_o aforesaid_a poor_a handful_n of_o man_n henry_n the_o second_o emperor_n nephew_n to_o this_o otho_n be_v on_o the_o one_o side_n so_o victorious_a as_o he_o join_v unto_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o kingdom_n of_o bohemia_n sclavonia_n and_o hungary_n on_o the_o other_o so_o give_v unto_o roman_a devotion_n as_o he_o be_v a_o canonize_a saint_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n his_o dithmar_n lib._n 6._o religion_n towards_o god_n b._n mother_n be_v singular_a in_o who_o honour_n he_o vow_v and_o keep_v his_o virginity_n unspotted_a together_o with_o kunegundis_fw-la the_o virgin_n holy_a empress_n his_o spouse_n when_o godofred_n viterb_fw-ge in_o chronic._n cuspianus_n bonfin_fw-fr de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la hungar._n dec._n 2._o lib._n 1._o he_o enter_v into_o any_o city_n his_o custom_n be_v to_o spend_v the_o first_o night_n pray_v in_o the_o church_n of_o our_o lady_n if_o any_o be_v in_o the_o place_n consecrate_v to_o her_o name_n hence_o in_o the_o battle_n he_o fight_v against_o bolistaus_n king_n of_o bohemia_n the_o holy_a martyr_n saint_n laurence_n saint_n george_n &_o saint_n adrian_n send_v by_o the_o queen_n of_o saint_n be_v see_v to_o go_v before_o his_o army_n nauclerus_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la gen_fw-la 34._o part_n 2._o pag._n 106._o carrying_z the_o standart_n of_o the_o cross_n strike_v the_o enemy_n with_o blindness_n so_o that_o they_o not_o be_v able_a to_o behold_v much_o less_o to_o resist_v the_o emperor_n force_n bohemia_n be_v make_v vassal_n unto_o the_o empire_n without_o any_o effusion_n of_o blood_n about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o two_o renown_a norman_n robert_n and_o roger_n undertake_v to_o free_a sicily_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o saracen_n wherewith_o the_o same_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n oppress_v be_v constrain_v with_o small_a force_n to_o thomas_n fazellus_n de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la sicul._n decad._n post_n lib._n 7._o p._n 397._o encounter_v a_o huge_a host_n wherein_o be_v thirty_o thousand_o horse_n and_o foot_n without_o number_n in_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o battle_n saint_n george_n be_v see_v blaze_v forth_o glorious_a beam_n of_o brightness_n upon_o a_o white_a steed_n in_o a_o white_a horsemans_n coat_n on_o which_o be_v sow_v a_o red_a cross_n thereby_o encourage_v the_o christian_a army_n and_o drive_v the_o enemy_n before_o he_o hence_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o norman_n conceive_v special_a devotion_n unto_o s._n george_n call_v upon_o he_o in_o their_o battle_n next_o after_o god_n and_o with_o the_o norman_n it_o be_v likely_a the_o same_o devotion_n enter_v into_o england_n in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o truth_n how_o many_o example_n do_v spain_n afford_v of_o victory_n get_v by_o catholic_a devotion_n against_o the_o saracen_n who_o in_o the_o year_n 701._o make_v themselves_o master_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o that_o country_n none_o of_o their_o victory_n more_o famous_a than_o that_o obtain_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n whereof_o they_o keep_v yearly_a a_o triumphal_a feast_n the_o this_o history_n be_v write_v by_o rod●ricus_n archbishop_n of_o toledo_n who_o be_v there_o present_a de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la
before_o be_v the_o like_a preparation_n pride_n and_o cost_v in_o time_n of_o war_n the_o soldier_n even_o the_o night_n before_o the_o battle_n bathe_v themselves_o in_o wine_n cast_v their_o gorge_n cry_v shout_a vaunt_a confide_v in_o their_o force_n as_o invincible_a on_o the_o hector_n boethius_n histor_n scot._n lib._n 14_o foe_n 3.114_o thomas_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr more_n ubi_fw-la sup_v other_o side_n the_o scottishman_n spend_v the_o night_n in_o confess_v their_o sin_n unto_o priest_n in_o prayer_n unto_o god_n by_o the_o mediation_n of_o saint_n special_o of_o s._n finan_n who_o sacred_a relic_n they_o bring_v with_o they_o into_o the_o field_n in_o the_o morning_n the_o king_n with_o his_o noble_n on_o the_o top_n of_o a_o hill_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o army_n hear_v mass_n receive_v the_o b._n sacrament_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o mauritius_n abbot_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o troop_n also_o do_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o other_o priest_n the_o mass_n end_v the_o say_a abbot_n come_v down_o &_o stand_v in_o the_o front_n of_o the_o army_n with_o the_o standart_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o they_o all_o salute_v fall_v with_o their_o body_n on_o the_o ground_n the_o english_a imagine_v this_o be_v do_v in_o token_n that_o they_o yield_v soon_o find_v themselves_o deceive_v &_o be_v teach_v by_o their_o overthrow_n a_o invincible_a truth_n that_o not_o warlike_a preparation_n not_o the_o multitude_n of_o man_n not_o the_o courage_n of_o human_a hart_n not_o the_o force_n of_o arm_n but_o true_a catholic_a piety_n confidence_n in_o god_n invocation_n of_o saint_n worship_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n humble_a confession_n of_o sin_n unto_o priest_n devotion_n unto_o the_o most_o dreadful_a mystery_n of_o the_o mass_n make_v king_n and_o country_n victorious_a by_o these_o example_n continue_v from_o constantine_n unto_o these_o time_n unto_o which_o innumerable_a other_o may_v be_v add_v your_o majesty_n may_v perceive_v the_o roman_a religion_n to_o have_v be_v as_o the_o mean_n to_o assure_v glorious_a victory_n unto_o christian_a prince_n so_o likewise_o the_o public_a christian_a profession_n at_o the_o least_o of_o all_o the_o last_o fourten_n age_n if_o this_o so_o ancient_a &_o victorious_a religion_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o express_a text_n of_o divine_a scripture_n so_o clear_o that_o her_o adversary_n be_v force_v to_o leave_v the_o literal_a sense_n upon_o no_o better_a ground_n then_o because_o the_o same_o be_v beyond_o the_o capacity_n of_o their_o understanding_n what_o more_o can_v be_v desire_v now_o this_o we_o have_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v &_o hope_v to_o have_v full_o perform_v the_o task_n in_o the_o treatise_n we_o here_o present_a prostrate_v at_o the_o foot_n of_o your_o royal_a clemency_n humble_o beseech_v the_o soveraygne_a overseer_n and_o over_o ruler_n of_o heart_n so_o to_o incline_v your_o majesty_n hart_n to_o be_v favourable_a unto_o your_o catholic_a subject_n as_o he_o see_v their_o heart_n to_o be_v sincere_o loyal_a unto_o you_o ever_o desirous_a of_o your_o royal_a sovereignty_n full_a of_o endear_a affection_n unto_o your_o person_n which_o from_o your_o infancy_n have_v grow_v together_o with_o the_o increase_n of_o your_o year_n which_o have_v wait_v every_o where_o on_o your_o honourable_a undertake_n with_o harty_a prayer_n for_o the_o most_o desire_a success_n still_o wish_v that_o our_o charles_n the_o first_o of_o england_n may_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o catholic_a religion_n &_o piety_n in_o the_o fame_n of_o victory_n and_o conquest_n in_o the_o large_a extent_n of_o dominion_n equal_a yea_o exceed_v the_o former_a worthy_n of_o that_o name_n and_o number_n the_o great_a and_o great_a and_o after_o a_o long_a happy_a reign_v pass_v to_o be_v participant_a of_o a_o eternal_a crown_n your_o loyal_a subject_n and_o beadsman_n i._o f._n the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n to_o the_o end_n good_a reader_n thou_o may_v more_o clear_o conceive_v the_o scope_n of_o these_o write_n i_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o give_v thou_o notice_n of_o some_o thing_n concern_v the_o answer_n unto_o the_o nine_o point_n and_o of_o the_o occasion_n thereof_o i_o suppose_v thou_o have_v hear_v of_o some_o conference_n about_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o pass_v between_o m._n john_n fisher_n jesuit_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o d._n francis_n white_a minister_n on_o the_o other_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o a_o honourable_a person_n that_o be_v move_v to_o doubt_v whether_o the_o protestant_a be_v the_o true_a church_n at_o the_o second_o conference_n our_o late_a sovereign_a king_n james_n be_v himself_o present_a about_o the_o conclusion_n thereof_o impose_v upon_o m._n fisher_n a_o task_n of_o write_v about_o some_o question_n of_o controversy_n and_o according_o send_v a_o note_n contay_v nine_o point_n with_o this_o title_n of_o superscription_n some_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n which_o withhold_v my_o join_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n except_o she_o reform_v herself_o or_o be_v able_a to_o give_v i_o satisfaction_n be_v these_o this_o be_v the_o true_a occasion_n of_o m._n fisher_n writing_n and_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o his_o majesty_n propose_v the_o say_v nine_o question_n whereby_o thou_o may_v discover_v the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o occasion_n pretend_v by_o the_o minister_n d._n white_a to_o save_v his_o own_o credit_n and_o to_o discredit_v m._n fisher_n relation_n of_o the_o conference_n he_o say_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n his_o majesty_n have_v well_o understand_v of_o the_o jesuit_n cretize_v relation_n &_o of_o his_o disperse_v hundred_o of_o paper_n to_o his_o own_o praise_n and_o to_o the_o disgrace_n of_o his_o adversary_n therefore_o make_v the_o proposition_n of_o the_o nine_o question_n that_o the_o jesuit_n answer_v they_o and_o the_o minister_n reply_v against_o his_o answer_n a_o public_a testimony_n may_v be_v extant_a whereby_o man_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o one_o and_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o other_o this_o be_v a_o tale_n feign_v upon_o the_o finger_n end_n of_o the_o writer_n thereof_o for_o beside_o that_o the_o superscription_n of_o the_o nine_o question_n show_v his_o majesty_n have_v another_o intention_n in_o propose_v they_o his_o majesty_n lay_v the_o charge_n of_o write_v upon_o m._n fisher_n at_o the_o second_o conference_n when_o he_o have_v disperse_v no_o paper_n about_o the_o particular_n of_o the_o first_o conference_n yea_o the_o say_a relation_n be_v not_o pen_v nor_o the_o pen_n thereof_o begin_v when_o the_o note_n of_o the_o nine_o point_n be_v deliver_v into_o his_o hand_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a fable_n that_o his_o majesty_n judge_v the_o jesuit_n relation_n of_o the_o conf●rences_n to_o be_v cretize_v and_o false_a &_o therefore_o charge_v he_o with_o the_o obligation_n of_o writing_n and_o in_o my_o judgement_n the_o minister_n be_v not_o advise_v in_o confess_v that_o according_a to_o m._n fisher_n relation_n his_o carriage_n in_o the_o conference_n be_v most_o shameful_a that_o a_o schoolboy_n of_o thirteen_o year_n old_a preface_n to_o the_o reader_n can_v not_o have_v be_v more_o unskilful_a and_o childish_a this_o confession_n i_o say_v can_v but_o be_v a_o stain_n to_o his_o cause_n &_o honour_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o most_o man_n the_o foresay_a relation_n be_v of_o such_o credit_n and_o in_o substance_n so_o exact_o true_a as_o none_o of_o the_o honourable_a audience_n disclaim_v from_o it_o yea_o which_o be_v more_o the_o minister_n counter-narration_n ready_a and_o prepare_v as_o he_o say_v for_o the_o print_n dare_v never_o appear_v against_o it_o whereof_o no_o doubt_n the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o he_o see_v that_o his_o print_a narration_n must_v either_o be_v notorious_o false_a with_o danger_n to_o be_v proclaim_v a_o falsifyer_n by_o the_o honourable_a audience_n or_o else_o in_o substance_n agree_v with_o m._n fisher_n which_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v so_o much_o to_o his_o discredit_n again_o the_o minister_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n m._n fisher_n publish_v his_o relation_n have_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n utter_v vaunt_v report_n of_o his_o own_o victory_n and_o of_o his_o put_n m._n fisher_n to_o a_o nonplus_n by_o argument_n he_o never_o propose_v yea_o concern_v controversye_n that_o be_v not_o touch_v in_o his_o print_a narration_n these_o triumphant_a argument_n can_v neither_o have_v be_v well_o omit_v nor_o hamsome_o set_v down_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v omit_v they_o his_o credent_n will_v have_v be_v scandalize_v perceave_v he_o do_v delude_v they_o by_o verbal_a report_n which_o he_o dare_v not_o utter_v in_o print_n if_o he_o shall_v have_v set_v they_o down_o the_o honourable_a audience_n will_v have_v be_v offend_v to_o see_v the_o cause_n as_o they_o suppose_v of_o truth_n mantayn_v by_o such_o exorbitant_a falsehood_n this_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n
unto_o which_o themselves_o say_v specious_a answer_n be_v make_v yea_o upon_o the_o argument_n that_o have_v neither_o substance_n nor_o seemliness_n neither_o form_n nor_o speciosity_n in_o they_o and_o this_o will_v be_v more_o clear_o confirm_v by_o the_o ensue_a confutation_n of_o the_o minister_n reply_v which_o against_o the_o answer_n unto_o the_o nine_o point_n come_v forth_o at_o last_o after_o two_o year_n expectation_n he_o pretend_v that_o his_o book_n be_v long_o before_o finish_v &_o ready_a for_o the_o print_n in_o his_o preface_n he_o stay_v that_o he_o may_v cite_v word_n by_o word_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o author_n quote_v in_o his_o margin_n that_o so_o his_o work_n may_v be_v more_o useful_a unto_o such_o as_o want_v the_o benefit_n of_o library_n which_o excuse_n to_o be_v false_a his_o margin_n proclaim_v in_o innumerable_a place_n i_o shall_v rather_o think_v consider_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o time_n if_o his_o book_n be_v so_o long_o before_o ready_a that_o another_o reason_n stay_v the_o print_n thereof_o you_o may_v remember_v that_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n by_o the_o clemency_n of_o our_o late_a sovereign_n during_o those_o two_o year_n have_v more_o calm_a day_n and_o a_o season_n of_o some_o more_o freedom_n than_o many_o year_n before_o they_o enjoy_v whereby_o the_o mind_n of_o protestant_n become_v more_o free_a &_o unpartial_a more_o erect_v to_o understand_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o controversye_n between_o they_o and_o we_o and_o less_o unwilling_a to_o see_v the_o catholic_a truth_n which_o now_o they_o may_v with_o less_o trouble_n &_o danger_n embrace_v wherefore_o the_o minister_n book_n not_o dare_v to_o appear_v in_o these_o sunshine_n day_n of_o more_o sincere_a and_o unpassionate_a judgement_n be_v by_o he_o reserve_v to_o be_v publish_v when_o the_o sky_n shall_v be_v darken_v with_o the_o cloud_n of_o persecution_n and_o displeasure_n without_o which_o protection_n of_o darkness_n it_o will_v perchance_o never_o have_v come_v to_o sight_n even_o as_o deform_a bird_n the_o daytime_n lie_v hide_v in_o barn_n in_o night_n abroad_o they_o fly_v for_o when_o former_a amity_n and_o peace_n with_o catholic_a prince_n begin_v to_o be_v shake_v when_o the_o parliament_n be_v hot_a in_o petition_v for_o a_o persecution_n of_o catholic_n with_o uttermost_a rigour_n then_o present_o go_v the_o minister_n book_n to_o the_o press_n and_o not_o long_o after_o when_o the_o decree_n for_o persecution_n be_v enact_v come_v forth_o secure_a and_o joyful_a answer_v to_o the_o jesuit_n preface_n in_o fine_a chant_v as_o siren_n sing_v in_o tempest_n certain_a verse_n of_o ovid_n extend_v by_o his_o vote_n and_o suffrage_n the_o persecution_n decree_v for_o england_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n far_o &_o near_o qua_fw-la roma_fw-la patet_fw-la fera_fw-fr regnat_fw-la erynnis_n in_o facinus_fw-la iurasse_n pute_fw-la dent_fw-la ocius_n omnes_fw-la quas_fw-la meruere_fw-la pati_fw-la sic_fw-la stat_fw-la sententia_fw-la poenas_fw-la and_o who_o shall_v with_o indifferency_n review_v the_o book_n may_v find_v the_o same_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o fly_v the_o light_n be_v every_o where_o full_a of_o afflictive_a term_n and_o spiteful_a inuective_n which_o can_v give_v no_o content_n but_o only_o to_o mind_n dim_v with_o the_o extreme_a passion_n of_o dislike_n who_o take_v pleasure_n to_o read_v not_o what_o may_v convince_v and_o convert_v but_o what_o may_v grieve_v and_o gall_v the_o adversary_n wherein_o the_o jesuit_n have_v some_o cause_n to_o complain_v that_o his_o answer_n be_v so_o moderate_a and_o temperate_a without_o any_o sharp_a term_n against_o protestant_n still_o excuse_v their_o error_n &_o mistake_n by_o the_o forwardness_n of_o their_o zeal_n he_o have_v reason_n i_o say_v to_o grieve_v that_o his_o treatise_n write_v with_o such_o charity_n and_o modesty_n and_o this_o not_o upon_o his_o own_o pleasure_n but_o enforce_v by_o his_o majesty_n command_n can_v not_o find_v in_o england_n a_o proportionable_a reply_n tend_v towards_o a_o calm_a clear_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o be_v set_v upon_o by_o fierce_a reproach_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v urge_v to_o write_v for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o that_o a_o minister_n may_v have_v occasion_n to_o disgorge_v towards_o he_o and_o his_o religion_n the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o gall_n it_o be_v true_a that_o with_o these_o reproachful_a discourse_n the_o minister_n have_v mingle_v matter_n of_o substance_n that_o be_v all_o the_o principal_a shift_n devise_v by_o other_o and_o which_o he_o can_v devise_v himself_o to_o give_v a_o show_n to_o his_o religion_n or_o to_o obscure_v the_o light_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o catholic_a which_o have_v he_o set_v down_o learned_o and_o calm_o without_o the_o admixtion_n of_o so_o much_o rageful_a impertinency_n his_o book_n have_v be_v of_o lesser_a bulk_n whereby_o also_o one_o good_a piece_n of_o this_o rejoinder_n may_v have_v be_v spare_v to_o wit_n the_o censure_n prefix_v before_o the_o same_o my_o purpose_n indeed_o be_v to_o have_v pass_v over_o his_o bitter_a inuective_n &_o large_a impertinency_n with_o contempt_n and_o only_o have_v touch_v what_o be_v real_o of_o substance_n but_o the_o request_n of_o friend_n win_v i_o to_o the_o contrary_n for_o they_o consider_v that_o many_o be_v carry_v away_o to_o their_o perdition_n not_o by_o the_o minister_n learning_n but_o by_o their_o opinion_n thereof_o think_v it_o necessary_a i_o shall_v prefix_v a_o discovery_n of_o his_o inside_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o rejoinder_n as_o he_o have_v place_v a_o fair_a picture_n of_o his_o outside_n with_o diverse_a glorious_a emblem_n to_o his_o honour_n upon_o the_o front_n of_o his_o reply_n in_o which_o prefix_a censure_n in_o every_o passage_n thereof_o matter_n of_o substance_n be_v handle_v yet_o my_o principal_a drift_n be_v to_o make_v the_o same_o a_o picture_n wherein_o the_o minister_n ignorance_n in_o all_o sort_n of_o science_n &_o his_o falsify_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o author_n be_v set_v forth_o not_o with_o the_o black_a coal_n of_o bare_a verbal_a accusation_n ●ut_v with_o the_o lightsome_a and_o lively_a colour_n of_o evident_a proof_n which_o that_o they_o may_v be_v more_o indelible_a be_v oil_v with_o commiseration_n of_o his_o blindness_n and_o of_o his_o deceive_v credent_n that_o on_o he_o for_o their_o salvation_n rely_v in_o the_o rejoinder_n which_o be_v collateral_o join_v with_o the_o text_n of_o the_o answer_n unto_o the_o nine_o point_n the_o matter_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o minister_n reply_v that_o indeed_o may_v breed_v doubt_n to_o man_n not_o perfect_o learn_v be_v refute_v the_o difficulty_n be_v not_o dissemble_v nor_o shun_v the_o same_o be_v set_v down_o common_o in_o the_o minister_n word_n with_o the_o whole_a force_n &_o pith_n thereof_o sum_v together_o the_o refutation_n present_o follow_v not_o by_o the_o sole_a contradiction_n of_o word_n but_o by_o the_o opposition_n of_o reason_n these_o as_o they_o be_v ordinary_o still_o of_o number_n so_o i_o hope_v the_o reader_n will_v find_v they_o to_o be_v likewise_o of_o weight_n that_o ponder_v they_o and_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o unpartial_a judgement_n he_o will_v easy_o see_v towards_o who_o the_o doctrine_n not_o only_o of_o christian_a tradition_n but_o also_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n incline_v if_o any_o wonder_n that_o this_o treatise_n come_v forth_o no_o soon_o the_o time_n be_v more_o than_o a_o year_n and_o a_o half_a since_o the_o minister_n reply_v be_v print_v let_v he_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v a_o good_a while_n after_o the_o print_n thereof_o before_o the_o same_o come_v to_o my_o hand_n in_o regard_n of_o my_o absence_n &_o great_a distance_n from_o london_n the_o book_n be_v huge_a and_o vast_a that_o to_o read_v the_o same_o attentive_o time_n and_o disoccupation_n be_v require_v the_o vastness_n thereof_o be_v likewise_o the_o cause_n the_o same_o can_v not_o be_v confute_v verbatim_o which_o have_v be_v easy_a without_o make_v a_o book_n as_o big_a as_o calepine_n with_o great_a and_o unnecessary_a charge_n which_o also_o be_v so_o big_a will_v never_o have_v find_v passage_n and_o utterance_n in_o time_n of_o difficulty_n hence_o the_o rejoiner_n be_v force_v not_o only_o to_o read_v his_o huge_a volume_n attentive_o but_o also_o to_o choose_v and_o sum_n together_o what_o the_o reply_n contain_v of_o substance_n sever_a the_o same_o from_o the_o dross_n of_o impertinent_a reproach_n which_o cost_v he_o both_o time_n and_o labour_n beside_o about_o the_o time_n this_o work_n shall_v have_v go_v to_o the_o print_n above_o a_o year_n ago_o they_o that_o shall_v have_v concur_v unto_o the_o print_n thereof_o be_v call_v to_o another_o place_n by_o their_o necessary_a occasion_n and_o stay_v away_o more_o than_o half_a a_o year_n in_o which_o case_n we_o have_v not_o
to_o meet_v knock_n will_v be_v sure_a not_o to_o be_v want_v among_o they_o i_o need_v not_o seek_v far_o for_o the_o like_a example_n of_o your_o vanity_n the_o very_a next_o page_n after_o your_o picture_n be_v sufficient_o store_v with_o such_o kind_n of_o stuff_n two_o woman_n there_o stand_v opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o that_o of_o the_o right_a side_n for_o your_o gospel_n that_o on_o the_o left_a for_o the_o roman_a religion_n between_o who_o you_o have_v picture_v four_o or_o five_o opposition_n which_o deserve_v to_o be_v note_v be_v wise_a one_o in_o which_o shine_v your_o skill_n in_o mystical_a or_o symbolical_a theology_n the_o first_o opposition_n your_o protestant_a woman_n have_v a_o sun_n of_o glory_n about_o her_o head_n to_o signify_v that_o she_o be_v 18._o be_v in_o sole_fw-la posuit_fw-la tabernaculum_fw-la suum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_o manifestatione_n posuit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o oculto_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la lateat_fw-la quid_fw-la heretice_fw-la fugis_fw-la ad_fw-la tenebras_fw-la quid_fw-la latitare_fw-la conaris_fw-la august_n in_o psal._n 18._o seat_v in_o the_o sun_n ever_o in_o manifest_a sight_n ever_o conspicuous_a to_o the_o world_n so_o perpetual_o visible_a that_o for_o more_o than_o 12._o hundred_o year_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n unto_o luther_n she_o be_v never_o see_v in_o the_o world_n as_o 168._o as_o napier_n upon_o revelat._n pag._n 168._o your_o doctor_n confess_v and_o the_o motto_n you_o have_v set_v under_o she_o do_v insinuate_v veritatem_fw-la aperit_fw-la dies_fw-la time_n discover_v truth_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v the_o same_o be_v hide_v until_o these_o late_a day_n of_o luther_n but_o see_v the_o conference_n with_o the_o devil_n whereby_o your_o luther_n be_v illumine_v happen_v at_o midnight_n as_o etc._n as_o vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la media_fw-la nocte_fw-la expergefactus_fw-la sum_fw-la qua_fw-la mecum_fw-la diabolus_fw-la disputationem_fw-la orsus_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n himself_o do_v testify_v i_o think_v not_o veritatem_fw-la aperit_fw-la dies_fw-la but_z nox_fw-la nocti_fw-la indicat_fw-la scientiam_fw-la according_a to_o the_o verbal_a sound_n will_v have_v be_v the_o fit_a motto_n for_o your_o gospel_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o roman_a religion_n poor_a woman_n be_v by_o you_o paint_v stark_o blind_a with_o this_o vnderscription_n error_n caecus_fw-la perchance_o you_o think_v she_o must_v needs_o be_v blind_a in_o respect_n of_o her_o old_a age_n have_v live_v in_o open_a profession_n to_o the_o world_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n this_o i_o may_v suspect_v to_o be_v your_o reason_n do_v i_o not_o see_v that_o you_o attribute_v the_o same_o papistical_a blindness_n even_o to_o the_o ancient_a and_o primitive_a church_n luther_n affirm_v 434._o affirm_v luther_n tom._n ●_o wittemb_n lib._n de_fw-fr seruo_fw-la arbitr_n p._n 434._o that_o the_o father_n of_o so_o many_o age_n be_v stark_o blind_a another_o protestant_n of_o great_a name_n do_v profess_v 43._o profess_v caelius_n secundus_fw-la curio_n de_fw-fr amplitud_n reg._n christi_fw-la l._n 1._o pag._n 43._o that_o the_o whole_a world_n ever_o almost_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n until_o this_o last_o age_n live_v in_o darkness_n blindness_n and_o ignorance_n your_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n doubt_v not_o to_o pronounce_v 473._o pronounce_v whitegift_n defence_n pag._n 472_o &_o 473._o how_o great_o spot_v be_v almost_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o of_o the_o latin_a also_o for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n merit_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o like_a that_o never_o since_o the_o apostle_n be_v there_o a_o church_n so_o pure_a and_o perfect_a as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v at_o this_o day_n wherefore_o we_o need_v not_o be_v angry_a with_o your_o paint_v our_o religion_n stark_o blind_a see_v she_o can_v not_o be_v the_o christian_a religion_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n ever_o since_o christ_n be_v she_o not_o blind_a in_o the_o foolish_a imagination_n of_o your_o fantastical_a gospel_n the_o second_o opposition_n mistress_n protestancy_n be_v paint_v with_o her_o breast_n open_a her_o pap_n display_v naked_a down_o to_o the_o girdle_n you_o will_v say_v this_o do_v represent_v the_o naked_a simplicity_n and_o candour_n of_o truth_n which_o your_o religion_n love_v no_o doubt_n that_o simple_a truth_n be_v find_v in_o she_o which_o hold_v man_n may_v lawful_o lie_v in_o behalf_n of_o her_o mentiri_fw-la her_o osiander_n epitome_n histor_n centur_fw-la 16._o pag_n 79●_n han●_n regulam_fw-la habent_fw-la caluinistae_fw-la l●cere_fw-la pro_fw-la gloria_fw-la christi_fw-la mentiri_fw-la gospel_n and_o that_o they_o can_v never_o lie_v enough_o in_o so_o good_a a_o cause_n may_v not_o i_o say_v more_o ●●uly_o that_o this_o more_o fit_o represent_v that_o the_o immodest_a fashion_n of_o woman_n to_o go_v with_o their_o breast_n naked_a as_o now_o be_v the_o use_n be_v by_o your_o gospel_n bring_v into_o england_n a_o fashion_n so_o odious_a in_o catholic_a time_n as_o even_o strumpet_n dare_v not_o use_v it_o in_o public_a hence_o some_o may_v suspect_v this_o levity_n &_o lightness_n character_v by_o her_o attire_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o her_o great_a belly_n wherewith_o you_o seem_v to_o set_v she_o forth_o whereby_o also_o you_o may_v signify_v that_o she_o be_v the_o offspring_n not_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o vigilantius_n his_o gospel_n which_o be_v so_o religious_a &_o devote_a unto_o carnal_a fecundity_n that_o as_o do_v testify_v 1._o testify_v nisi_fw-la pregnantes_fw-la viderint_fw-la vxores_fw-la clericorum_fw-la infantesque_fw-la de_fw-la ulnis_fw-la matrum_fw-la vagientes_fw-la christi_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la non_fw-la tribuunt_fw-la hieron_n lib._n advers._n vigil_n cap._n 1._o s._n hierome_n her_o bishop_n will_v not_o order_v any_o minister_n except_o first_o they_o see_v their_o wife_n either_o to_o have_v great_a belly_n or_o young_a babe_n hang_v at_o their_o breast_n though_o perchance_o your_o meaning_n be_v by_o this_o emblem_n to_o express_v the_o blessing_n of_o fecundity_n which_o your_o gospel_n enjoy_v in_o your_o worship_n of_o the_o ministry_n who_o yearly_o fill_v the_o parish_n of_o the_o realm_n with_o many_o novel_a branch_n of_o your_o leviticall_a stock_n on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o have_v do_v a_o deed_n of_o charity_n towards_o the_o roman_a woman_n in_o clothe_v she_o with_o modest_a attire_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n the_o foot_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v bare_a to_o signify_v perchance_o that_o she_o be_v a_o barefooted_a nun_n or_o a_o great_a practicant_n of_o go_v barefoot_a in_o pilgrimage_n and_o of_o such_o penitential_a work_n and_o whereas_o you_o make_v the_o garment_n of_o our_o church_n speack●●d_v with_o great_a variety_n of_o incise_v work_n this_o do_v not_o displease_v we_o whatsoever_o your_o meaning_n may_v be_v for_o this_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o emblem_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n use_v by_o the_o royal_a prophet_n psal_n 44._o where_o she_o be_v describe_v a_o queen_n stand_v on_o the_o right-hand_a of_o the_o fair_a among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 44.15_o man_n psal._n 44.15_o circumamicta_fw-la varietatibus_fw-la clothe_v about_o with_o variety_n which_o variety_n wrought_v on_o her_o garment_n may_v signify_v the_o great_a variety_n of_o holy_a heroical_a work_n practise_v by_o her_o child_n whereby_o she_o 59.6_o she_o lex_fw-la domini_fw-la immaculata_fw-la convertens_fw-la animas_fw-la psal._n 18.8_o isa._n 59.6_o convert_v so_o great_a variety_n of_o nation_n from_o paganism_n unto_o christ._n fron_n the_o attire_n of_o which_o kind_n of_o work_n your_o religion_n be_v as_o naked_a &_o innocent_a as_o the_o child_n new_o bear_v that_o of_o your_o endeavour_n in_o this_o behalf_n we_o may_v pronounce_v that_o of_o the_o prophet_n inutilia_fw-la prophet_n telae_fw-la eorum_fw-la non_fw-la erunt_fw-la in_o vestiman_n un●_n opera_fw-la eorum_fw-la opera_fw-la inutilia_fw-la the_o web_n they_o weave_v will_v not_o serve_v for_o clothing_n their_o work_n be_v unprofitable_a work_n for_o your_o doctrine_n have_v no_o force_n to_o convert_v infidel_n unto_o christ_n but_o only_o to_o pervert_v &_o draw_v 16._o draw_v indocti_fw-la &_o instabiles_fw-la depravant_fw-la scripturas_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la sunt_fw-la difficilia_fw-la intellectu_fw-la 2._o pet._n 3_o 16._o unstable_a christian_n from_o his_o church_n the_o three_o opposition_n the_o woman_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v paint_v with_o a_o royal_a crown_n in_o her_o right_a hand_n hold_v the_o same_o towards_o her_o breast_n to_o show_v her_o affection_n unto_o king_n who_o she_o hug_v in_o her_o arm_n as_o the_o ape_n do_v his_o young_a one_o till_o she_o press_v they_o to_o death_n by_o extremity_n of_o love_n this_o happen_v unto_o his_o majesties_n etc._n majesties_n camden_n elizab._n p._n 458._o hunc_fw-la lamentabilem_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la finem_fw-la habuit_fw-la maria_fw-la scotorum_fw-la regina_fw-la
etc._n etc._n mother_n who_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o your_o religion_n you_o hold_v she_o so_o fast_o you_o grip_v she_o so_o hard_a as_o you_o drive_v the_o breath_n out_o of_o her_o body_n &_o make_v her_o sacred_a blood_n run_v about_o she_o anoint_v shoulder_n the_o roman_a religion_n in_o opposite_a have_v give_v she_o by_o your_o paint_v a_o vizard_n and_o be_v make_v to_o stand_v tread_v upon_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n to_o signify_v that_o she_o be_v by_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v a_o deposer_n &_o contemner_n of_o king_n this_o fancy_n will_v indeed_o be_v a_o truth_n can_v you_o prove_v that_o wickliff_n luther_n caluin_n beza_n knox_n buchanam_n wittingham_n goodman_n &_o the_o like_a preface_n like_a see_v bancroft_n danger_n posit_n whit_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o &_o l._n 2._o c_o 1._o &_o protestant_n apolog._n preface_n be_v roman_a catholic_n or_o can_v you_o show_v that_o they_o be_v papist_n of_o who_o 68_o who_o beza_n ep._n theolog._n 68_o beza_n say_v put_v himself_o in_o the_o number_n what_o church_n shall_v we_o now_o have_v in_o the_o world_n have_v not_o this_o course_n be_v hold_v to_o wit_n of_o erect_v church_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n in_o despite_n preface_n despite_n protestant_n have_v murder_v five_o catholic_a king_n or_o prince_n they_o have_v depose_v nine_o from_o their_o kingdom_n whole_o or_o in_o part_n they_o have_v set_v up_o their_o religion_n at_o the_o least_o in_o forty_o town_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n expel_v the_o magistrate_n murder_a priest_n &_o religious_a person_n break_v down_o image_n and_o burn_a church_n they_o have_v be_v at_o the_o least_o twenty_o several_a time_n in_o the_o field_n against_o their_o catholic_a soveraygne_n &_o six_o or_o seven_o time_n against_o their_o soveraygne_n that_o be_v present_a in_o person_n all_o which_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n if_o the_o margin_n do_v permit_v read_v bancroft_n dangerous_a position_n osianders_n epitome_n histor._n centur._n 16._o &_o the_o protestant_n apolog._n preface_n of_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n so_o plain_o do_v he_o acknowledge_v your_o church_n to_o have_v be_v every_o where_o plant_v by_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o command_n &_o edict_n the_o sword_n &_o government_n the_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n of_o king_n the_o four_o opposition_n the_o protestant_a gentlewoman_n hold_v a_o pillar_n under_o her_o left_a arm_n with_o a_o bough_n of_o palm_n in_o the_o same_o hand_n whereas_o the_o roman_a have_v on_o her_o left_a hand_n a_o chameleon_n sit_v your_o meaning_n be_v that_o you_o forsooth_o be_v strong_a &_o constant_a in_o your_o religion_n but_o we_o weak_a &_o waver_a ready_a to_o change_v for_o fear_n of_o persecution_n your_o constancy_n indeed_o be_v know_v that_o you_o be_v in_o your_o doctrine_n as_o immutable_a as_o the_o moon_n in_o what_o point_n of_o religion_n say_v 3_o say_v andraeas_n duditius_n see_v epist._n theol._n bezae_n epist_n 1._o &_o 3_o a_o eminent_a protestant_n be_v they_o that_o impugn_v the_o roman_a bishop_n firm_a and_o constant_a they_o coin_v monthly_a faith_n they_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o wind_n of_o every_o doctrine_n what_o their_o religion_n be_v to_o day_n one_o may_v know_v but_o what_o it_o will_v be_v to_o morrow_n neither_o themselves_o nor_o any_o mortal_a man_n can_v tell_v and_o whereas_o you_o make_v this_o your_o gossip_n to_o have_v on_o her_o left_a side_n the_o pillar_n of_o religion_n &_o on_o her_o right_n the_o crown_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o fit_a to_o express_v your_o church_n of_o england_n for_o in_o her_o religion_n king_n have_v the_o better_a &_o upper_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o apostolical_a sentence_n we_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n they_o man_n be_v turn_v backward_o her_o doctrine_n be_v mutable_a with_o the_o prince_n pleasure_n that_o she_o may_v be_v better_o resemble_v by_o a_o weathercock_n they_o by_o a_o pillar_n for_o what_o constancy_n can_v she_o have_v that_o prefer_v a_o temporal_a crown_n before_o christian_a truth●_n the_o five_o opposition_n between_o these_o two_o woman_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o title_n that_o be_v set_v over_o their_o head_n your_o be_v term_v veritas_fw-la vnivoca_fw-la and_o we_o mendacium_fw-la aequivocum_fw-la veritas_fw-la univoca_fw-la be_v in_o english_a verity_n teach_v by_o the_o professor_n thereof_o with_o one_o voice_n with_o uniform_a consent_n i_o think_v the_o reader_n will_v smile_v at_o your_o good_a invention_n that_o you_o can_v find_v no_o true_a title_n for_o your_o gospel_n for_o what_o more_o notorious_a to_o the_o world_n then_o that_o your_o reform_a professor_n be_v vnivocall_a in_o the_o doctrine_n they_o preach_v as_o divine_a truth_n even_o as_o the_o bvilder_n of_o babel_n be_v vnivocall_a in_o language_n after_o the_o division_n of_o their_o tongue_n unto_o the_o roman_a religion_n which_o do_v detest_v lie_v about_o any_o the_o least_o thing_n which_o condemn_v equivocal_a &_o ambiguous_a speech_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o religion_n in_o matter_n of_o bargain_n in_o familiarity_n of_o mitigation_n of_o see_v the_o treatise_n tend_v to_o mitigation_n speech_n why_o do_v you_o term_v she_o mendacium_fw-la aequivocum_fw-la upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o in_o regard_n she_o teach_v that_o a_o christian_n to_o defend_v his_o life_n and_o good_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o oppressor_n may_v sometime_o use_v ambiguous_a and_o reserve_v speech_n a_o practice_n express_o allow_v in_o scripture_n as_o reticetur_fw-la as_o gregor_n in_o exposit_n l._n 1._o reg._n c._n 16._o his_o verbis_fw-la ostenditur_fw-la quòd_fw-la tyrannorum_fw-la saevitia_fw-la atque_fw-la versutia_fw-la quandoque_fw-la est_fw-la pia_fw-la fraud_v deludenda_fw-la sic_fw-la tamen_fw-la tyranni_fw-la deludendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la ut_fw-la caveatur_fw-la culpa_fw-la mendacii_fw-la quod_fw-la tunc_fw-la bene_fw-la perficitur_fw-la cùm_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la fit_a asseritur_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la fit_a sic_fw-la dicitur_fw-la ut_fw-la celetur_fw-la quia_fw-la ex_fw-la parte_fw-la dicitur_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la reticetur_fw-la say_v s._n gregory_n the_o scripture_n show_v that_o the_o crafty_a cruelty_n of_o tyrant_n be_v sometime_o to_o be_v delude_v by_o pious_a fraud_v so_o save_v ourselves_o from_o their_o malice_n that_o we_o tell_v not_o a_o lie_n which_o then_o be_v well_o perform_v when_o what_o be_v do_v be_v affirm_v yet_o so_o affirm_v as_o what_o be_v do_v be_v also_o conceal_v the_o thing_n be_v utter_v in_o part_n and_o in_o part_n not_o utter_v but_o retain_v in_o mind_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v clear_o discover_v the_o falsehood_n &_o inanity_n of_o your_o frontispiciall_a emblem_n and_o pageant_n which_o occasion_v my_o set_v this_o picture_n before_o the_o rejoinder_n the_o rather_o also_o to_o make_v your_o image_n perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o the_o entrance_n of_o both_o our_o ●ookes_n put_v together_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v behold_v in_o the_o one_o the_o outside_n in_o the_o other_o the_o inside_n of_o your_o venerable_a self_n if_o caluin_n scandalis_fw-la caluin_n caluin_n lib._n de_fw-la scandalis_fw-la say_v true_a of_o minister_n praeclarum_fw-la quidem_fw-la zelum_fw-la simulant_fw-la they_o can_v make_v a_o excellent_a fair_a show_n of_o zeal_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o your_o painter_n curious_a hand_n have_v elegant_o set_v forth_o your_o outside_n for_o he_o have_v paint_v in_o your_o face_n a_o fair_a show_n of_o zeal_n of_o modesty_n of_o wisdom_n of_o gravity_n special_o in_o your_o demure_a look_n velvet_n cap_n and_o gray_a beard_n so_o comb_v and_o handsome_o compose_v as_o your_o wife_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v have_v her_o finger_fw-la in_o the_o trim_v thereof_o aswell_o as_o in_o the_o set_n of_o your_o ruff_n but_o quid_fw-la si_fw-la intus_fw-la excutias_fw-la what_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o inside_n here_o your_o painter_n pencil_n fail_v he_o which_o defect_n some_o body_n perchance_o yourself_o undertake_v to_o supply_v with_o his_o poetical_a quill_n set_v these_o verse_n under_o your_o picture_n and_o the_o picture_n of_o your_o book_n wear_v a_o crown_n wisdom_n &_o grace_n see_v in_o that_o modest_a look_n truth_n be_v triumph_n error_n downfall_n in_o this_o book_n but_o this_o be_v not_o lively_a paint_n of_o your_o inside_n to_o the_o eye_n but_o only_o verbal_a assertion_n of_o your_o hide_a worth_n to_o the_o ear_n which_o if_o one_o will_v reject_v as_o the_o fabulous_a conceit_n of_o a_o poet_n what_o can_v be_v reply_v or_o if_o you_o be_v author_n of_o the_o verse_n yourself_o some_o perhaps_o will_v attribute_v these_o praise_n not_o unto_o truth_n but_o unto_o your_o fawn_v with_o over-favourable_a fancy_n upon_o your_o own_o learning_n triumph_v before_o the_o victory_n and_o usurp_v a_o crown_n without_o right_n what_o then_o shall_v i_o do_v how_o may_v i_o set_v forth_o the_o true_a &_o undeniable_a figure_n of_o your_o inside_n your_o ●74_n your_o reply_v pag._n ●74_n self_n say_v
inference_n in_o a_o matter_n where_o you_o pretend_v to_o be_v very_o confident_a that_o you_o can_v bring_v most_o invincible_a proof_n a_o controversy_n there_o be_v between_o you_o and_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a inviolable_a ordinance_n that_o all_o lay_v man_n read_v scripture_n so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o translate_v scripture_n into_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n &_o not_o to_o take_v translation_n from_o such_o person_n as_o abuse_v they_o or_o use_v they_o to_o their_o perdition_n in_o which_o question_n we_o say_v you_o 278._o you_o reply_v pag._n 278._o affirm_v with_o great_a confidence_n that_o the_o read_n of_o holy_a scripture_n by_o lay_v people_n which_o must_v needs_o imply_v translation_n of_o they_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n and_o because_o the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o he_o can_v never_o hear_v nor_o read_v in_o protestant_n substantial_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o this_o pretend_a divine_a ordinance_n the_o common_o urge_a text_n search_v the_o scripture_n be_v insufficient_a you_o say_v that_o you_o not_o only_o urge_v the_o text_n john_n 3.39_o which_o the_o jesuit_n think_v he_o can_v elude_v by_o subtle_a distinction_n as_o the_o arrian_n elude_v the_o text_n of_o s._n john_n 10.30_o that_o be_v solide_o answer_v as_o father_n as_o caluin_n in_o caput_fw-la 10._o joan_n circa_fw-la vers_fw-la ●0_n say_v the_o ancient_a father_n abuse_v this_o text_n i_o &_o my_o father_n be_v one_o to_o prove_v christ_n not_o consubstantial_a with_o his_o father_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o unity_n of_o substance_n but_o of_o unity_n of_o consent_n betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o father_n caluin_n aver_v but_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o you_o lay_v together_o on_o a_o heap_n in_o this_o 378._o this_o reply_v pag._n 378._o sort_n the_o eunuch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n act._n 8.28_o the_o beroean_n be_v call_v noble_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o search_v the_o holy_a scripture_n act._n 17.11_o he_o be_v call_v bless_v that_o read_v and_o hear_v apocalip_n 1.3_o the_o galatian_n read_v the_o scripture_n gal._n 4.22_o the_o ephesian_n c._n 3.4_o the_o colossian_n c._n 4.16_o the_o thessalonian_o 1._o thes._n 5.27_o the_o father_n be_v so_o plentiful_a in_o this_o argument_n as_o i_o have_v 42._o have_v defence_n of_o my_o brother_n pag._n 42._o elsewhere_o show_v that_o it_o will_v astonish_v any_o man_n who_o have_v read_v they_o to_o behold_v such_o impudence_n in_o papist_n as_o to_o deny_v the_o practice_n to_o have_v be_v primitive_a and_o catholic_a but_o necessity_n have_v no_o law_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v suffer_v to_o speak_v papistry_n must_v fall_v like_o dagon_n before_o the_o ark●_n thus_o you_o give_v we_o great_a cause_n to_o commiserate_v your_o blindness_n that_o dispute_v so_o ignorant_o you_o shall_v conclude_v so_o arrogant_o you_o have_v in_o the_o place_n by_o you_o quote_v 42._o quote_v orthodox_n pag._n 42._o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o heresy_n bring_v many_o testimony_n of_o father_n to_o prove_v what_o no_o man_n deny_v to_o wit_n these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o it_o be_v pious_a and_o godly_a to_o read_v scripture_n with_o devotion_n with_o humility_n with_o submission_n of_o judgement_n unto_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n and_o common_a exposition_n of_o catholic_a doctor_n second_o that_o the_o practice_n of_o read_v by_o lay_v people_n be_v common_a &_o frequent_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o time_n that_o the_o learned_a language_n be_v vulgar_o know_v in_o which_o tongue_n the_o church_n neither_o now_o do_v nor_o ever_o do_v prohibit_v the_o read_n of_o scripture_n unto_o any_o person_n these_o two_o thing_n we_o approve_v so_o that_o you_o be_v unaduised_a might_n i_o not_o say_v impudent_a in_o your_o affirm_v that_o the_o papist_n impudent_o deny_v this_o to_o have_v be_v a_o primitive_a practice_n no_o we_o deny_v not_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n with_o due_a humility_n to_o be_v pious_a or_o to_o have_v be_v a_o primitive_a practice_n but_o only_o two_o proud_a noveltye_n bring_v in_o by_o your_o religion_n first_o that_o it_o 126._o it_o the_o very_a word_n of_o your_o brother_n john_n in_o his_o way_n pag._n 126._o be_v lawful_a yea_o necessary_a for_o every_o particular_a man_n by_o the_o scripture_n to_o examine_v and_o judge_n of_o the_o thing_n the_o church_n teach_v he_o and_o when_o a_o private_a man_n by_o scripture_n reject_v and_o condemn_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o great_a and_o best_a church_n that_o be_v his_o judgement_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v as_o private_a but_o as_o spiritvall_n and_o the_o public_a censure_n of_o the_o spirit_n second_o that_o all_o even_o layman_n by_o divine_a pretext_n and_o ordinance_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n &_o to_o have_v they_o in_o their_o vulgar_a language_n this_o your_o doctrine_n this_o your_o practice_n we_o dislike_v as_o dangerous_a as_o impious_a as_o the_o fountain_n of_o discord_n of_o heresy_n and_o of_o manifold_a most_o damnable_a error_n a_o doctrine_n which_o be_v it_o every_o where_o establish_v not_o dagon_n before_o the_o ark_n but_o christianity_n will_v fall_v before_o and_o yield_v unto_o the_o devil_n as_o some_o of_o your_o side_n teach_v by_o lamentable_a experience_n acknowledge_v and_o complain_v this_o opinion_n say_v they_o 119._o they_o hooker_n ecclesiast_fw-la policy_n pag._n 119._o be_v once_o insert_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o vulgar_a what_o it_o may_v grow_v unto_o god_n only_o know_v thus_o much_o we_o see_v it_o have_v already_o make_v thousand_n so_o headstronge_a even_o in_o grosse_n and_o palpable_a error_n as_o that_o a_o man_n who_o capacity_n will_v scarce_o serve_v he_o to_o utter_v five_o word_n in_o sensible_a manner_n blush_v not_o for_o matter_n of_o scripture_n to_o think_v his_o own_o bare_a yea_o as_o good_a as_o the_o nay_o of_o all_o the_o wise_a grave_a and_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n which_o insolency_n must_v be_v repress_v or_o it_o will_v the_o very_a bane_n of_o christian_a religion_n behold_v open_a confession_n extort_a upon_o the_o rack_n of_o truth_n by_o which_o we_o may_v perceive_v how_o full_o and_o handsome_o your_o doctrine_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a and_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o every_o particular_a man_n read_v scripture_n and_o by_o it_o examine_v and_o judge_v the_o church_n teach_v have_v make_v dagon_n to_o fall_v before_o the_o ark_n but_o leave_v the_o vanity_n of_o your_o bitter_a vaunt_a let_v we_o examine_v what_o demonstration_n out_o of_o scripture_n you_o bring_v for_o your_o pretend_a divine_a ordinance_n which_o with_o so_o much_o confidence_n you_o aver_v if_o your_o argue_v be_v idle_a and_o ridiculous_a in_o this_o point_n wherein_o you_o profess_v to_o be_v so_o confident_a what_o may_v be_v expect_v of_o you_o in_o other_o article_n especial_o be_v challenge_v to_o show_v your_o uttermost_a force_n by_o your_o adversary_n affirm_v 278._o affirm_v see_v the_o reply_n pag._n 278._o that_o he_o can_v never_o find_v any_o solid_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o this_o protestant_n pretend_v divine_a ordinance_n your_o argument_n be_v seven_o draw_v from_o 7._o text_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o your_o antecedent_n common_o be_v either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a and_o your_o inference_n ridiculous_a the_o first_o the_o 8.28_o the_o act._n 8.28_o eunuch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o ignorant_a layman_n read_v scripture_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n your_o antecedent_n be_v more_o they_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_v i_o read_v not_o any_o direct_a praise_n of_o he_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o text_n only_o 8.28_o only_o act._n 8.28_o say_v he_o be_v sit_v in_o his_o chariot_n &_o read_v the_o prophet_n esay_n but_o suppose_v he_o be_v commend_v for_o his_o read_n as_o it_o be_v indeed_o commendable_a be_v it_o consequent_a that_o therefore_o every_o christian_a by_o divine_a order_n and_o precept_n do_v the_o like_a be_v every_o man_n bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o do_v every_o thing_n for_o which_o any_o person_n be_v praise_v in_o scripture_n david_n be_v commend_v in_o scripture_n for_o rise_v at_o midnight_n to_o praise_n god_n be_v this_o argument_n good_a ergo_fw-la every_o christian_a be_v bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o rise_v at_o midnight_n very_o this_o consequence_n be_v as_o good_a yea_o better_a both_o in_o respect_n of_o form_n and_o matter_n then_o be_v this_o of_o you_o the_o enunch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n ergo_fw-la every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v scripture_n by_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o second_o be_v the_o 17.11_o the_o act._n 17.11_o beroean_n be_v call_v noble_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o search_v the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la we_o may_v with_o
scripture_n that_o demonstrate_v by_o reason_n how_o this_o be_v possible_a but_o only_o that_o we_o bring_v place_n that_o express_o say_v that_o this_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n for_o as_o you_o say_v pag._n 438._o in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n concern_v accident_n without_o a_o subject_n or_o of_o a_o body_n be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o or_o concern_v any_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o god_n omnipotency_n i_o answer_v that_o likewise_o in_o this_o text_n of_o scripture_n 1●_n scripture_n joan._n 1_o 1●_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n that_o a_o perfect_a substantial_a nature_n can_v exist_v without_o proper_a personality_n or_o that_o two_o complete_a nature_n can_v subsist_v together_o in_o the_o same_o hypostasis_fw-la nor_o of_o any_o miracle_n do_v by_o the_o divine_a omnipotency_n yet_o because_o this_o text_n of_o scripture_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o literal_a sense_n except_o those_o hard_a &_o incomprehensible_a thing_n be_v grant_v to_o be_v possible_a by_o divine_a omnipotency_n we_o must_v together_o with_o the_o mystery_n implicit_o believe_v that_o god_n can_v separate_v proper_a subsistence_n from_o complete_a substantial_a nature_n that_o two_o nature_n infinite_o distant_a in_o perfection_n can_v subsist_v in_o the_o same_o hypostasis_fw-la though_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o express_o so_o affirm_v in_o like_a manner_n though_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v not_o express_o say_v that_o his_o body_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o nor_o that_o accident_n can_v exist_v without_o a_o subject_n by_o divine_a omnipotency_n yet_o because_o this_o his_o word_n whereon_o we_o ground_n our_o faith_n concern_v this_o mystery_n can_v as_o yourself_o grant_v be_v true_a in_o the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n except_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o be_v believe_v hence_o we_o must_v together_o with_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n implicit_o believe_v these_o miracle_n to_o be_v do_v wherefore_o in_o say_v you_o will_v never_o believe_v they_o except_o their_o possibility_n be_v first_o demonstrate_v unto_o you_o through_o ignorance_n of_o theology_n you_o profess_v infidelity_n for_o to_o resolve_v not_o to_o believe_v seem_v implicancy_n involue_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n except_o they_o be_v either_o several_o express_v as_o possible_a in_o god_n word_n or_o else_o demonstrable_a by_o reason_n be_v the_o right_a way_n to_o believe_v just_a nothing_o there_o be_v no_o mystery_n of_o faith_n which_o do_v not_o imply_v some_o difficultye_n the_o possibility_n of_o which_o be_v neither_o express_o aver_v in_o scripture_n nor_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o reason_n a_o four_o example_n of_o your_o ignorance_n in_o theology_n §._o 4._o i_o add_v another_o example_n about_o the_o bless_a eucharist_n wherein_o you_o discover_v gross_a ignorance_n not_o only_o against_o theology_n but_o even_o common_a sense_n and_o this_o example_n may_v serve_v as_o a_o pattern_n how_o insufficient_o and_o impertinent_o you_o answer_v the_o jesuite_n argument_n the_o jesuit_n pag._n 406._o argue_v in_o this_o sort_n christ_n do_v affirm_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v true_o real_o substantial_o not_o the_o figure_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o body_n but_o his_o very_a body_n but_o how_o can_v consecrate_v bread_n be_v term_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o his_o body_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o it_o thus_o you_o answer_v pag._n 406._o to_o the_o effect_v hereof_o local_a &_o corporal_a presence_n be_v not_o necessary_a a_o father_n and_o his_o son_n may_v be_v absent_a by_o distance_n of_o place_n one_o from_o the_o other_o yet_o the_o son_n be_v true_o and_o real_o unite_v with_o his_o father_n so_o as_o his_o father_n nature_n be_v in_o he_o and_o he_o have_v right_a in_o his_o father_n person_n and_o state_n a_o man_n good_n may_v be_v at_o constantinople_n and_o yet_o he_o live_v in_o england_n be_v a_o true_a possessor_n and_o owner_n of_o they_o and_o he_o may_v communicate_v and_o use_v they_o and_o distance_n of_o place_n hinder_v not_o his_o right_a and_o propriety_n now_o although_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o thing_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a yet_o thus_o far_o there_o be_v agreement_n that_o even_o as_o we_o possess_v temporal_a thing_n be_v local_o absent_a so_o likewise_o we_o may_v receyve_v and_o partake_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n by_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n and_o donation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o a_o celestial_a and_o spiritual_a manner_n thus_o you_o now_o behold_v how_o many_o way_n you_o discover_v gross_a ignorance_n in_o this_o answer_n first_o be_v all_o that_o you_o say_v true_a yet_o be_v it_o impertinent_a and_o inept_o bring_v in_o answer_n of_o the_o jesuit_n argument_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o man_n may_v receive_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o faith_n and_o donation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n sanctity_n and_o grace_n through_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n that_o be_v absent_a for_o this_o all_o acknowledge_v to_o happen_v in_o baptism_n and_o to_o be_v possible_a in_o the_o eucharist_n if_o christ_n have_v so_o ordain_v the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n whether_o consecrate_a bread_n may_v be_v true_o and_o real_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v as_o you_o say_v a_o thing_n not_o only_o individual_o distinct_a but_o also_o local_o distant_a from_o his_o body_n a_o man_n be_v in_o london_n may_v possess_v iuridical_o a_o horse_n that_o be_v in_o the_o country_n be_v it_o therefore_o true_a to_o say_v that_o this_o man_n in_o london_n be_v true_o &_o real_o the_o horse_n in_o the_o country_n a_o merchant_n in_o london_n may_v have_v great_a treasure_n of_o money_n in_o constantinople_n and_o a_o right_a to_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o his_o coffer_n at_o london_n may_v one_o therefore_o show_v his_o empty_a coffer_n at_o london_n say_v true_o this_o be_v a_o treasure_n of_o money_n in_o like_a manner_n suppose_v which_o be_v false_a that_o a_o man_n have_v iuridicall_a authority_n over_o christ_n body_n absent_a and_o exist_v in_o heaven_n to_o dispose_v thereof_o at_o his_o pleasure_n may_v he_o therefore_o be_v say_v to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o christ_n body_n may_v one_o therefore_o show_v the_o sacrament_n be_v in_o your_o tenet_n a_o empty_a thing_n in_o respect_n of_o contain_v christ_n bodily_a substance_n say_v true_o thereof_o this_o be_v real_o christ_n body_n and_o corporal_a substance_n who_o will_v maintain_v such_o absurdity_n that_o be_v sober_a wherefore_o your_o discourse_n that_o a_o man_n may_v true_o posesse_v a_o thing_n absent_a serve_v nothing_o to_o satisfy_v the_o jesuite_n question_n how_o can_v consecrate_v bread_n be_v true_o very_o &_o real_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o present_v in_o place_n with_o it_o second_o what_o more_o absurd_a than_o what_o you_o affirm_v that_o a_o man_n may_v not_o only_o in_o right_n possess_v but_o real_o and_o true_o use_v his_o thing_n that_o be_v absent_a can_v a_o man_n in_o london_n use_v and_o ride_v on_o his_o horse_n that_o be_v at_o york_n or_o a_o merchant_n in_o bristol_n feed_v on_o his_o grape_n that_o be_v grow_v in_o his_o vineyard_n in_o spain_n if_o they_o can_v and_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o say_v they_o can_v how_o can_v a_o man_n exist_v on_o earth_n receive_v true_o and_o real_o christ_n distant_a from_o he_o as_o far_o as_o the_o high_a heaven_n receive_v he_o i_o say_v not_o in_o a_o sign_n only_o &_o according_a to_o gracious_a effect_n but_o even_o according_a to_o his_o body_n and_o corporal_a substance_n with_o their_o mouth_n of_o flesh_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n or_o this_o be_v soule-feeding_a grace_n give_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o my_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n even_o to_o your_o corporal_a mouth_n wherewith_o i_o bid_v you_o to_o take_v and_o eat_v it_o three_o who_o can_v forbear_v laugh_v to_o hear_v you_o so_o sober_o affirm_v that_o the_o son_n that_o be_v absent_a from_o his_o father_n as_o far_o as_o constantinople_n be_v from_o london_n be_v not_o only_o moral_o by_o love_n and_o affection_n but_o true_o and_o real_o unite_v with_o his_o father_n for_o union_n be_v the_o way_n unto_o unity_n so_o that_o whensoever_o two_o individual_a thing_n be_v true_o &_o real_o unite_v by_o this_o union_n be_v make_v a_o three_o individual_a thing_n distinct_a from_o each_o of_o they_o a_o part_n &_o from_o all_o other_o
mary_n 3._o worship_v &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n &_o angel_n 4._o the_o liturgy_n &_o private_a prayer_n for_o the_o ignorant_a in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n 5._o repetition_n of_o pater_n noster_n ave_n &_o creed_n especial_o affix_v a_o kind_n of_o merit_n to_o the_o number_n of_o they_o 6._o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n 7._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n &_o the_o abet_v of_o it_o by_o concomitancy_n 8._o work_n of_o supererogation_n especial_o with_o reference_n unto_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n 9_o the_o opinion_n of_o depose_v king_n and_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n by_o papal_a power_n whether_o direct_o or_o indirect_o the_o preface_n most_o gracious_a and_o dread_a soveraygne_n a_o conference_n about_o religion_n between_o doctor_n white_a and_o i_o be_v occasion_n that_o your_o majesty_n call_v i_o to_o your_o gracious_a presence_n not_o disdain_v to_o dispute_v with_o one_o so_o mean_a and_o unworthy_a as_o myself_o imitate_v his_o benignity_n who_o vicegerent_n you_o be_v and_o according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o rex_fw-la as_o 2._o reg._n 14.17_o sicut_fw-la angelus_n dei_fw-la sic_fw-la est_fw-la dominus_fw-la meus_fw-la rex_fw-la his_o angel_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o the_o good_a angel_n first_o to_o strike_v fear_n and_o terror_n into_o they_o to_o who_o he_o appear_v but_o in_o the_o end_n to_o leave_v they_o full_a of_o comfort_n in_o like_a sort_n your_o majesty_n for_o though_o the_o first_o salutation_n carry_v a_o show_n of_o severity_n yet_o your_o dismiss_v i_o be_v benign_a and_o gracious_a not_o only_o pardon_v my_o earnestness_n in_o defend_v the_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o also_o say_v charge_n say_v what_o the_o minister_n do_v object_n against_o this_o narration_n be_v refute_v in_o m._n fisher_n book_n about_o untruth_n false_o lay_v to_o his_o charge_n you_o like_v i_o the_o better_a the_o grateful_a acknowledgement_n and_o admiration_n of_o this_o your_o princely_a clemency_n make_v i_o desire_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o my_o soul_n that_o i_o can_v full_o satisfy_v your_o majesty_n of_o my_o dutiful_a and_o loyal_a affection_n which_o be_v fast_o tie_v unto_o your_o sacred_a person_n by_o a_o threefold_a 14.14_o threefold_a funiculus_fw-la triplex_fw-la difficilè_fw-la rumpitur_fw-la eccles._n 14.14_o inviolable_a bond_n the_o slander_n the_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o the_o jesuit_n oratory_n be_v plausible_a and_o thereupon_o enter_v into_o a_o common_a place_n that_o truth_n need_v no_o trim_v which_o be_v true_a yet_o if_o need_v many_o time_n apology_n &_o defence_n against_o slander_n law_n of_o nature_n oblige_v i_o thereunto_o as_o be_v your_o majesty_n bear_a subject_n the_o transgression_n whereof_o be_v unnatural_a barbarous_a inhuman_a the_o law_n of_o god_n require_v the_o like_a constant_a and_o perfect_a allegiance_n at_o my_o hand_n bind_v i_o to_o regard_v you_o as_o his_o lieutenant_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v your_o power_n and_o authority_n as_o 13.1_o as_o rom._n 13.1_o his_o ordination_n so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o must_v not_o only_o outward_o observe_v but_o also_o admit_v your_o majesty_n will_n and_o command_v with_o reverence_n into_o the_o secret_a closet_n of_o my_o inmost_a 13.5_o inmost_a rom._n 13.5_o conscience_n &_o soul_n the_o constitution_n also_o of_o the_o order_n whereof_o i_o be_o a_o unworthy_a member_n do_v strict_o command_v i_o the_o same_o in_o severe_a manner_n charge_v the_o subject_n thereof_o no_o way_n to_o meddle_v in_o state-matter_n or_o in_o prince_n affair_n much_o less_o under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n or_o to_o consent_v unto_o any_o enterprise_n that_o may_v disturb_v the_o quiet_a and_o tranquillity_n of_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o see_v we_o be_v so_o devote_a to_o our_o own_o institute_n that_o our_o jesuitarum_fw-la our_o colloquium_fw-la de_fw-la secretis_fw-la jesuitarum_fw-la adversary_n thereupon_o among_o many_o other_o calumniation_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o more_o reverent_o esteem_v &_o careful_o observe_v the_o constitution_n of_o our_o rule_n than_o the_o law_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v for_o your_o majesty_n full_a satisfaction_n set_v down_o some_o part_n of_o our_o constitution_n in_o this_o point_n in_o manner_n follow_v ●iusdem_fw-la follow_v decret_n 101._o cong_n 5._o general_n ac_fw-la can._n 12._o ●iusdem_fw-la public_a ●iusdem_fw-la monita_fw-la gener._n §._o 18._o the_o constitution_n out_o of_o which_o these_o be_v take_v be_v term_v monita_fw-la generalia_fw-la general_n admonition_n because_o they_o concern_v general_o all_o person_n of_o the_o order_n by_o way_n of_o distinction_n from_o particular_a which_o concern_v only_o some_o kind_n of_o person_n as_o preacher_n master_n etc._n etc._n which_o particular_a admonition_n be_v as_o public_a as_o the_o general_a whereby_o you_o may_v see_v the_o minister_n ignorance_n in_o logic_n to_o be_v equal_a unto_o his_o malice_n against_o jesuit_n who_o say_v that_o the_o term_n of_o general_n admonition_n forbid_v to_o meddle_v in_o state-matter_n argue_v that_o jesuit_n have_v other_o secret_a admonition_n that_o warrant_v such_o meddle_v as_o though_o general_n admonition_n be_v condistinct_a against_o secret_n and_o particular_a against_o public_a whereas_o general_n may_v be_v keep_v secret_a &_o particular_a be_v make_v public_a ut_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la specie_fw-la mali_fw-la abstineatur_fw-la &_o querelis_fw-la etiam_fw-la ex_fw-la falsis_fw-la suspicionibus_fw-la provenientibus_fw-la quoad_fw-la fieri_fw-la poterit_fw-la occurratur_fw-la praecipitur_fw-la nostris_fw-la omnibus_fw-la in_o virtute_fw-la sanctae_fw-la obedientiae_fw-la &_o sub_fw-la poena_fw-la inhabilitatis_fw-la ad_fw-la quaevis_fw-la officia_fw-la &_o dignitates_fw-la seu_fw-la praelationes_fw-la vocisque_fw-la etiam_fw-la activae_fw-la quàm_fw-la passivae_fw-la privationis_fw-la ne_fw-la quispiam_fw-la publicis_fw-la &_o saecularibus_fw-la principum_fw-la negotijs_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la rationem_fw-la status_fw-la ut_fw-la vocant_fw-la pertineant_fw-la ulla_fw-la ratione_fw-la se_fw-la immiscere_fw-la nec_fw-la etiam_fw-la quantumuis_fw-la requisitus_fw-la &_o rogatus_fw-la eiusmodires_fw-la politicas_fw-la tractandi_fw-la curam_fw-la suscipere_fw-la audeat_fw-la vel_fw-la praesumat_fw-la 17._o praesumat_fw-la decret_n 57_o &_o can._n 17._o illa_fw-la autem_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la à_fw-la spirituali_fw-la instructione_n diversa_fw-la sunt_fw-la negotia_fw-la status_fw-la censeri_fw-la debent_fw-la qualia_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la principum_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la foedera_fw-la vel_fw-la ad_fw-la regnorum_fw-la iura_fw-la &_o successiones_fw-la pertinent_a vel_fw-la ad_fw-la bella_fw-la tam_fw-la civilia_fw-la quàm_fw-la externa_fw-la 41._o externa_fw-la in_o regulis_fw-la communibus_fw-la reg._n 41._o jubet_fw-la regula_fw-la 41._o ut_fw-la saecularia_fw-la negotia_fw-la utpote_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la à_fw-la nostro_fw-la instituto_fw-la aliena_fw-la &_o uchementer_fw-la à_fw-la spiritualibus_fw-la avocant_fw-la multùm_fw-la aversemur_fw-la concionatorum_fw-la aversemur_fw-la in_o regulis_fw-la concionatorum_fw-la jubentur_fw-la concionatores_fw-la societatis_fw-la à_fw-la reprehensionibus_fw-la principum_fw-la &_o magnatum_fw-la reipub_fw-la abstinere_fw-la &_o obedientiam_fw-la erga_fw-la principes_fw-la &_o magistratus_fw-la frequenter_a &_o seriò_fw-la suis_fw-la in_o concionibus_fw-la populo_fw-la commendare_fw-la constitutionibus_fw-la commendare_fw-la in_o constitutionibus_fw-la jubent_fw-la constitutiones_fw-la nostrae_fw-la varijs_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la ut_fw-la oremus_fw-la speciatim_fw-la pro_fw-la principibus_fw-la eorumque_fw-la spirituali_fw-la saluti_fw-la praecipuâ_fw-la curâ_fw-la procurandae_fw-la ac_fw-la promovendae_fw-la invigilemus_fw-la ob_fw-la universale_fw-la bonum_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la multos_fw-la alios_fw-la qui_fw-la eorum_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la reguntur_fw-la proveniet_fw-la instructionibus_fw-la proveniet_fw-la in_o instructionibus_fw-la extat_fw-la denique_fw-la instructio_fw-la pro_fw-la confessarijs_fw-la principum_fw-la quâ_fw-la nostris_fw-la seriò_fw-la interdicitur_fw-la ne_fw-la occasione_n huius_fw-la muneris_fw-la rebus_fw-la politicis_fw-la aut_fw-la reipublicae_fw-la gubernationi_fw-la se_fw-la immisceant_fw-la jubentur_fw-la etiam_fw-la hanc_fw-la instructionem_fw-la principibus_fw-la ostendere_fw-la curareque_fw-la ut_fw-la ij_o planè_fw-la intelligant_fw-la quid_fw-la societas_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la postulat_fw-la qui_fw-la confessarium_fw-la sibi_fw-la eligit_fw-la neque_fw-la per_fw-la leges_fw-la nostras_fw-la licere_fw-la nobis_fw-la alijs_fw-la conditionibus_fw-la id_fw-la oneris_fw-la suscipere_fw-la i_o humble_o crave_v pardon_n for_o offer_v so_o many_o particular_n of_o our_o rule_n unto_o your_o majesty_n perusal_n which_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v do_v but_o out_o of_o a_o most_o strong_a desire_n to_o give_v your_o majesty_n savage_a majesty_n the_o minister_n shape_v this_o argument_n into_o this_o form_n no_o jesuite_n observe_v the_o rule_n of_o his_o order_n can_v meddle_v in_o state_n matter_n every_o jesuit_n observe_v the_o rule_n of_o his_o order_n ergo_fw-la no_o jesuit_n do_v meddle_v in_o state_n matter_n and_o they_o in_o answer_n thereof_o he_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v the_o minor_a must_v be_v a_o stranger_n in_o the_o world_n and_o have_v live_v a_o anchoret_n or_o recluse_n in_o some_o cave_n who_o never_o hear_v of_o campian_n parson_n creswell_n garnet_n suarez_n bellarmin_n etc._n etc._n i_o
by_o grace_n can_v discern_v the_o same_o to_o be_v his_o voice_n and_o word_n this_o be_v speak_v with_o more_o confidence_n than_o consideration_n god_n have_v a_o 1._o a_o joan._n 1._o eternal_a increate_v manner_n of_o speak_v to_o wit_n the_o production_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n by_o which_o the_o bless_a discern_v he_o from_o all_o other_o speaker_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o blissful_a learning_n but_o no_o create_a manner_n of_o speak_v revelation_n speak_v this_o be_v also_o true_a when_o god_n speak_v inward_o to_o the_o soul_n for_o in_o that_o speak_n he_o use_v the_o native_a intellectual_a tongue_n that_o be_v the_o understand_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n his_o divine_a inspiration_n be_v apprehension_n of_o understanding_n of_o the_o will_n and_o affection_n hence_o this_o inward_a speak_n be_v not_o by_o the_o mere_a sound_n know_v to_o be_v divine_a but_o by_o the_o conjecture_n of_o some_o effect_n or_o by_o special_a revelation_n be_v so_o proper_a to_o god_n as_o it_o can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v his_o speak_n by_o the_o mere_a sound_n of_o the_o voice_n without_o special_a revelation_n or_o else_o some_o consequent_a miraculous_a effect_n which_o i_o declare_v and_o prove_v by_o this_o argument_n if_o there_o be_v a_o man_n that_o have_v no_o proper_a sound_n and_o accent_n of_o voice_n but_o can_v and_o do_v exact_o use_v the_o voice_n of_o every_o man_n as_o he_o please_v this_o man_n can_v not_o be_v know_v by_o his_o voice_n likewise_o if_o a_o man_n have_v no_o proper_a stile_n in_o writing_n but_o can_v perfect_o write_v the_o stile_n of_o any_o author_n as_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a he_o can_v not_o be_v know_v from_o other_o writer_n by_o his_o phrase_n but_o god_n have_v no_o proper_a external_a sound_n or_o accent_n of_o voice_n nor_o any_o proper_a stile_n or_o phrase_n in_o writing_n but_o use_v the_o prope●_n tongue_n of_o those_o man_n who_o it_o please_v he_o to_o inspire_v fold_v up_o his_o heavenly_a conceit_n in_o the_o prophet_n natural_a language_n whence_o arise_v sapit_fw-la arise_v the_o difference_n of_o stile_n betwixt_o the_o apocalyps_n and_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n be_v note_v by_o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 7._o c._n 10._o and_o caluin_n institut_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 8._o note_v variety_n of_o stile_n among_o the_o evangelist_n &_o prophet_n davidi_n &_o isaiae_n ●ucunda_fw-la &_o suavis_fw-la fluit_fw-la oratio_fw-la apud_fw-la amos_n pastorem_fw-la jeremiam_fw-la &_o zacharian_a asperior_fw-la sermorusticitatem_fw-la sapit_fw-la such_o difference_n of_o style_n among_o the_o sacred_a writer_n so_o that_o it_o be_v great_a want_n of_o discretion_n to_o think_v to_o know_v a_o book_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o the_o stile_n abstract_v from_o the_o matter_n now_o the_o matter_n be_v such_o as_o it_o do_v not_o with_o evidence_n certain_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v nothing_o but_o truth_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v learned_a man_n as_o have_v be_v say_v may_v from_o within_o scripture_n gather_v argument_n that_o probable_o persuade_v that_o the_o same_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o evident_a probability_n can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o persuasion_n certain_a and_o inevident_a it_o may_v be_v a_o comfortable_a confirmation_n not_o a_o assure_a foundation_n of_o faith_n the_o five_o argument_n if_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a and_o evident_a but_o only_o to_o such_o as_o have_v the_o light_n and_o faculty_n of_o faith_n they_o can_v be_v the_o prime_a principle_n of_o faith_n evident_a in_o themselves_o &_o not_o prove_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v clear_a because_o every_o faculty_n suppose_v her_o principle_n &_o by_o the_o light_n of_o they_o which_o the_o student_n bring_v with_o he_o she_o show_v truth_n pertinent_a unto_o her_o skill_n that_o be_v hide_v but_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a and_o evident_a but_o to_o such_o only_a as_o have_v aforehand_o the_o light_n and_o faculty_n of_o faith_n yea_o they_o be_v dark_a &_o obscure_a unto_o infidel_n as_o not_o only_o the_o 9_o the_o verbum_fw-la eius_fw-la infidelibus_fw-la nox_fw-la est_fw-la hilarius_n in_o cap._n 10._o matth._n 2._o caluin_n l._n 1._o justit_fw-la c._n 8._o n._n 9_o father_n teach_v but_o also_o protestant_n grant_v therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o prime_a principle_n of_o faith_n suppose_v before_o faith_n which_o infidel_n see_v to_o be_v true_a resolve_v to_o believe_v the_o mysterye_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o be_v secondary_a truth_n dark_a and_o obscure_a in_o themselves_o believe_v upon_o the_o prime_a principle_n of_o faith_n the_o sixth_o argument_n hence_o arise_v the_o sixth_o argument_n which_o be_v à_fw-la priori_fw-la if_o scripture_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o light_n of_o a_o superior_a principle_n of_o faith_n they_o be_v not_o the_o prime_a principle_n of_o say_v evident_a in_o themselves_o and_o indemonstrable_a but_o scripture_n be_v prove_v by_o a_o superior_a &_o more_o evident_a principle_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v true_a because_o god_n the_o prime_a verity_n author_n of_o scripture_n can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v now_o that_o prime_a verity_n can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v be_v a_o principle_n of_o faith_n superior_a and_o more_o evident_a than_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o god_n and_o divine_a therefore_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a indemonstrable_a principle_n of_o faith_n but_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v truth_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n publish_v it_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v it_o as_o such_o even_o as_o all_o as_o other_o mysterye_n of_o faith_n be_v prove_v the_o seven_o argument_n final_o protestant_n for_o this_o their_o fancy_n of_o final_a resolution_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n have_v not_o any_o argument_n worth_a a_o rush_n their_o chief_a argument_n be_v two_o first_o scripture_n be_v a_o principle_n of_o faith_n but_o principle_n be_v to_o be_v evident_a in_o themselves_o and_o to_o be_v know_v by_o their_o own_o light_n this_o argument_n much_a &_o often_o urge_v by_o you_o &_o your_o 20._o your_o way_n pag._n 37._o defence_n cap._n 20._o brother_n be_v silly_a because_o all_o principle_n must_v not_o be_v evident_a in_o themselves_o but_o only_o the_o first_o &_o prime_a principle_n of_o every_o faculty_n or_o hability_n of_o knowledge_n as_o all_o know_v but_o scripture_n be_v not_o as_o have_v be_v show_v the_o prime_a principle_n of_o faith_n but_o be_v secondary_a principle_n which_o be_v know_v we_o by_o the_o light_n of_o they_o may_v know_v many_o other_o thing_n the_o second_o argument_n elsewhere_o argument_n this_o argument_n be_v urge_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 16._o and_o often_o elsewhere_o the_o scripture_n be_v light_a for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v light_n and_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o every_o light_n be_v evident_a in_o itself_o and_o know_v by_o the_o evidence_n it_o have_v in_o itself_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n must_v of_o themselves_o appear●_n and_o show_n that_o they_o be_v divine_a truth_n i_o answer_v the_o minor_a of_o this_o argument_n be_v false_a &_o the_o whole_a argument_n ground_v upon_o ignorance_n in_o not_o discern_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o corporal_a &_o spiritual_a light_n true_a it_o be_v that_o every_o corporal_a light_n that_o do_v enlighten_v the_o eye_n of_o body_n must_v be_v evident_a in_o itself_o &_o primely_a &_o original_o clear_a but_o not_o so_o every_o truth_n that_o illustrate_v man_n understanding_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o eye_n of_o body_n can_v by_o thing_n see_v infer_v &_o conclude_v thing_n that_o be_v hide_v but_o only_o can_v apprehend_v what_o do_v direct_o and_o immediate_o show_v itself_o but_o man_n understanding_n not_o only_o apprehend_v what_o show_v itself_o but_o by_o thing_n know_v infer_v &_o breed_v in_o itself_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n hide_v hence_o unto_o understanding_n though_o thing_n show_v themselves_o direct_o and_o by_o their_o own_o light_n be_v she_o prime_a principle_n and_o mean_n to_o know_v other_o thing_n yet_o also_o thing_n hide_v in_o themselves_o be_v former_o know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o authority_n may_v thereby_o become_v light_n that_o be_v mean_v to_o know_v yet_o further_o of_o thing_n hide_v so_o that_o speak_v of_o spiritual_a and_o intellectual_a light_n it_o be_v false_a that_o all_o light_n enlighten_v man_n understanding_n to_o know_v other_o thing_n be_v evident_a in_o themselves_o yea_o some_o secondary_a principle_n and_o light_n there_o be_v which_o must_v be_v show_v by_o superior_a light_n before_o they_o become_v light_n in_o which_o kind_n be_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o light_n unto_o the_o faithful_a
because_o know_v by_o the_o church_n perpetual_a tradition_n to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a authority_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o god_n supreme_a verity_n who_o can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o second_o part_n about_o the_o catholic_a resolution_n of_o faith_n no_o doubt_n but_o that_o to_o the_o end_n a_o man_n may_v believe_v divine_a inward_a illumination_n anoint_v his_o hart_n be_v necessary_a the_o question_n be_v what_o be_v the_o external_a infallible_a ground_n unto_o which_o divine_a inspiration_n move_v man_n to_o adhere_v that_o they_o may_v be_v settle_v in_o the_o true_a save_a faith_n the_o answer_n in_o few_o word_n be_v this_o the_o resolution_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v firm_o assure_v about_o four_o principle_n against_o four_o enemy_n by_o four_o perfection_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prima_fw-la veritas_fw-la prime_n and_o infinite_a verity_n that_o can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v this_o i_o declare_v and_o prove_v the_o first_o principle_n prove_v §._o 1._o the_o first_o enemy_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n be_v the_o pagan_a vivimus_fw-la pagan_a dicunt_fw-la pagani_fw-la ben●_n vivimus_fw-la or_o profane_a joan._n profane_a fuerunt_fw-la philosophi_fw-la de_fw-la virtutibus_fw-la &_o vitijs_fw-la sublimia_fw-la multa_fw-la tractantes_fw-la aug._n tract_n 45._o in_o joan._n philosopher_n who_o be_v persuade_v he_o may_v attain_v unto_o perfect_a felicity_n and_o sanctity_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o sole_a natural_a truth_n against_o this_o enemy_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v that_o only_a which_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n unto_o his_o prophet_n about_o this_o principle_n true_a believer_n be_v resolve_v by_o a_o perfection_n which_o in_o the_o first_o place_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prime_a &_o infinite_a verity_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o can_v lie_v nor_o reveal_v any_o untruth_n when_o he_o speak_v immediate_o himself_o by_o secret_a inspiration_n hence_o we_o thus_o resolve_v god_n the_o prime_a verity_n can_v reveal_v untruth_n special_o about_o the_o state-matter_n of_o salvation_n when_o he_o speak_v by_o secret_a inspiration_n immediate_o himself_o but_o he_o reveal_v in_o this_o manner_n by_o inspiration_n unto_o his_o prophet_n that_o man_n can_v serve_v he_o true_o nor_o be_v save_v without_o know_v supernatural_a truth_n beyond_o the_o reason_n the_o as_o man_n felicity_n the_o blissful_a vision_n of_o god_n be_v above_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n so_o it_o be_v convenient_a god_n shall_v bring_v he_o unto_o it_o by_o believe_a truth_n above_o the_o reach_n of_o his_o reason_n reach_n of_o reason_n which_o truth_n in_o particular_a he_o reveal_v unto_o they_o therefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v supernatural_a truth_n such_o as_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n unto_o his_o prophet_n and_o other_o who_o he_o do_v vouchsafe_v to_o teach_v immediate_o by_o himself_o and_o send_v they_o to_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o world_n this_o the_o prime_a and_o high_a principle_n of_o christian_a resolution_n protestant_n not_o in_o express_a word_n but_o in_o deed_n and_o by_o consequence_n reject_v from_o be_v the_o stay_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o as_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o aristotle_n last_o and_o final_o by_o the_o light_n and_o evidence_n thereof_o because_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v conformable_a to_o reason_n do_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o aristotle_n nor_o upon_o his_o bare_a world_n even_o so_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o light_n &_o resplendent_a verity_n thereof_o because_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a truth_n as_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o do_v do_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o author_n and_o doctor_n of_o scripture_n nor_o his_o bare_a mere_a &_o pure_a word_n this_o be_v most_o evident_a for_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o some_o doctor_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o another_o to_o believe_v his_o word_n through_o reverence_n unto_o his_o authority_n as_o know_v he_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o his_o word_n hence_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v so_o independent_a of_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n as_o though_o god_n be_v not_o prime_a verity_n but_o fallible_a in_o his_o word_n yet_o their_o faith_n may_v subsist_v as_o now_o it_o do_v this_o be_v clear_a because_o let_v one_o be_v never_o so_o fallible_a and_o false_a yet_o when_o his_o say_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a we_o may_v yea_o we_o can_v but_o believe_v his_o word_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n thereof_o but_o protestant_n pretend_v that_o the_o say_n of_o scripture_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o light_n &_o lustre_n of_o the_o doctrine_n believe_v therein_o &_o upon_o this_o resplendent_a verity_n they_o build_v last_o their_o faith_n therefore_o though_o god_n be_v fallible_a &_o may_v be_v false_a yet_o their_o faith_n that_o his_o scripture_n be_v truth_n which_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v truth_n by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n may_v subsist_v be_v this_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o depend_v not_o upon_o god_n be_v the_o prime_n and_o infallible_a verity_n which_o give_v no_o more_o credit_n unto_o god_n than_o man_n will_v give_v unto_o a_o liar_n to_o wit_n to_o believe_v he_o so_o far_o as_o they_o see_v he_o to_o credit_v the_o word_n of_o his_o teach_n so_o far_o as_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v truth_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n very_o this_o form_n of_o faith_n resolution_n be_v gross_a and_o unchristian_a which_o i_o be_o persuade_v protestant_n will_v not_o maintain_v do_v they_o well_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v or_o can_v they_o find_v some_o other_o way_n of_o resolution_n whereby_o they_o may_v know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o god_n without_o be_v bind_v to_o rely_v upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o principle_n demonstrate_v §._o 2._o some_z will_v say_v god_n be_v prime_a verity_n by_o who_o word_n we_o can_v be_v deceive_v but_o how_o prou●_n you_o these_o pretend_v divine_a revelation_n to_o be_v true_o such_o here_o come_v in_o the_o second_o enemy_n of_o true_a religion_n who_o follow_v his_o blind_a passion_n labour_v to_o deprive_v the_o world_n of_o the_o proof_n of_o divine_a revelation_n that_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o the_o sun_n this_o enemy_n be_v the_o jew_n who_o grant_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v supernatural_a truth_n reveal_v of_o god_n deny_v the_o reveal_v doctrine_n of_o god_n to_o be_v apostolical_a that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n against_o this_o enemy_n be_v the_o second_o principle_n of_o true_a religion_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n reveal_v of_o god_n be_v no_o other_o but_o apostolical_a that_o be_v which_o the_o apostle_n publish_v to_o the_o world_n about_o this_o principle_n true_a believer_n be_v resolve_v by_o a_o second_o perfection_n of_o the_o prime_a verity_n which_o be_v that_o he_o can_v with_o his_o seal_n that_o be_v with_o miracle_n and_o work_n proper_a to_o himself_o warrant_v or_o subsigne_v falsehood_n devise_v or_o vent_v by_o any_o man_n hence_o we_o make_v this_o resolution_n god_n be_v infinite_a verity_n can_v by_o sign_n and_o miracle_n testify_v falsehood_n devise_v and_o vent_v by_o man_n god_n have_v by_o manifest_a miracle_n testify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v his_o word_n and_o message_n ergo_fw-la the_o same_o be_v not_o a_o false_a religion_n invent_v of_o man_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n reveal_v of_o god_n the_o miracle_n by_o which_o the_o prime_a verity_n have_v give_v testimony_n unto_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n may_v be_v reduce_v unto_o four_o head_n first_o the_o miraculous_a prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n most_o clear_o &_o punctual_o fullfil_v in_o christ_n jesus_n his_o b._n mother_n his_o apostle_n his_o church_n second_o the_o miraculous_a work_n in_o all_o kind_n which_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o disciple_n have_v wrought_v which_o be_v so_o many_o so_o manifest_a so_o wonderful_a &_o above_o nature_n as_o we_o can_v desire_v great_a evidence_n three_o the_o miraculous_a conversion_n of_o the_o world_n by_o twelve_o poor_a unlearned_a fisherman_n the_o world_n i_o say_v which_o they_o be_v in_o the_o flower_n of_o human_a pride_n &_o glory_n in_o the_o height_n of_o human_a erudition_n and_o learning_n bring_v they_o to_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n seem_o absurd_a in_o reason_n to_o follow_v a_o course_n of_o discipline_n true_o repugnant_a unto_o sensuality_n to_o embrace_v a_o way_n of_o salvation_n
so_o contemptible_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n that_o very_o the_o work_n of_o the_o world_n creation_n do_v not_o more_o clear_o discover_v god_n the_o author_n of_o nature_n than_o this_o of_o the_o world_n conversion_n do_v show_v itself_o to_o proceed_v from_o the_o author_n of_o grace_n four_o the_o miraculous_a continuance_n of_o a_o christian_a catholic_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n foretell_v by_o our_o saviour_n notwithstanding_o so_o many_o persecusecution_n by_o the_o jew_n heathen_n heretic_n politician_n and_o dissolute_a christian_n against_o this_o principle_n of_o resolution_n minister_n 15._o minister_n chalenour_n in_o his_o credo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la p._n 1._o c._n 6._o field_n l._n 3._o cap._n 15._o and_o our_o minister_n cite_v minister_n reply_v pag._n ●16_n cite_v in_o particular_a object_n that_o miracle_n be_v only_o probable_a &_o not_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o divine_a doctrine_n yea_o 14._o yea_o bellarm._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr eccl._n cap._n 14._o bellarmine_n say_v we_o can_v know_v evident_o that_o miracle_n be_v true_a for_o if_o we_o do_v we_o shall_v know_v evident_o that_o our_o faith_n be_v true_a &_o so_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v faith_n i_o answer_v that_o such_o evidence_n as_o do_v exclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o pious_a reverence_n &_o affection_n unto_o god_n word_n evidence_n i_o say_v enforce_v man_n to_o believe_v can_v stand_v with_o true_a faith_n if_o we_o know_v by_o mathematical_a or_o metaphysical_a evidence_n that_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v true_a perchance_o this_o evidence_n will_v compel_v man_n to_o believe_v and_o overcome_v the_o natural_a obscurity_n and_o seem_a impossibility_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o as_o bellarmine_n say_v we_o can_v be_v mathematical_o and_o altogether_o infallible_o sure_a by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n that_o miracle_n be_v true_a notwithstanding_o we_o must_v not_o deny_v what_o scripture_n affirm_v 36._o affirm_v joan._n 5●_n 36._o that_o miracle_n be_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n bind_v man_n to_o believe_v and_o consequent_o that_o we_o may_v know_v they_o to_o be_v true_a agebantur_fw-la true_a suarez_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la disput_fw-la 4._o sect_n 3._o n._n 9_o videntibus_fw-la constare_fw-la poterat_fw-la evidentia_fw-la naturali_fw-la vera_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la agebantur_fw-la by_o physical_a evidence_n as_o we_o be_v sure_a of_o thing_n we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n or_o of_o such_o as_o be_v once_o evident_a to_o the_o world_n be_v by_o the_o world_n full_a report_n declare_v unto_o us._n neither_o do_v this_o physical_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n take_v away_o the_o merit_n of_o faith_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o evidence_n not_o be_v altogether_o and_o in_o the_o high_a de●ree_n infallible_a by_o itself_o for_o our_o sense_n may_v sometime_o be_v deceive_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o overcome_v the_o natural_a obscurity_n darkness_n &_o seem_a falsehood_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o those_o miracle_n for_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o like_v seem_v to_o reason_n as_o impossible_a as_o any_o miracle_n can_v seem_v evident_a unto_o sense_n hence_o when_o faith_n be_v propose_v by_o miracle_n arise_v a_o conflict_n betwixt_o the_o seem_a evidence_n of_o the_o miracle_n and_o the_o seem_a darkness_n and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n against_o which_o obscurity_n a_o man_n can_v get_v the_o victory_n by_o the_o sole_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n except_o he_o be_v inward_o holpen_v by_o the_o light_n of_o god_n spirit_n move_v he_o by_o pious_a affection_n to_o cleave_v to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v by_o so_o clear_a testimony_n prove_v his_o word_n as_o a_o man_n shut_v up_o in_o ●_o chamber_n with_o two_o light_n whereof_o the_o one_o make_v ●he_n wall_n seem_v white_a the_o other_o blow_v can_v be_v firm_o resolve_v what_o to_o think_v till_o day_n light_n enter_v &_o obscure_v both_o those_o light_n discover_v the_o truth_n even_o so_o a_o man_n look_v upon_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o the_o light_n of_o christian_a miracle_n do_v to_o prove_v they_o will_v be_v move_v to_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v truth_n but_o look_v upon_o ●hem_n through_o the_o evidence_n of_o their_o seem_a impossibility_n unto_o reason_n they_o will_v seem_v false_a nor_o will_v he_o be_v able_a firm_o to_o resolve_v for_o the_o side_n of_o faith_n until_o the_o light_n of_o divine_a grace_n enter_v into_o his_o hart_n make_v he_o to_o prefer_v through_o pious_a reverence_n towards_o god_n the_o so_o propose_a authority_n of_o his_o word_n before_o the_o seem_a impossibility_n of_o man_n reason_n the_o three_o principle_n demonstrate_v §._o 3._o be_v resolve_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n be_v save_v truth_n &_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n we_o meet_v with_o a_o three_o enemy_n who_o labour_v to_o drive_v we_o out_o of_o the_o beat_a high_a way_n to_o know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n this_o enemy_n be_v the_o heretic_n a_o domestic_a enemy_n and_o therefore_o more_o dangerous_a these_o man_n grant_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v supernatural_a and_o reveal_v the_o reveal_v to_o be_v the_o apostolical_a and_o no_o other_o but_o they_o will_v have_v the_o rule_n of_o know_v what_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n teach_v to_o be_v special_a illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n not_o catholic_a tradition_n for_o there_o be_v a_o double_a kind_n of_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n that_o may_v be_v pretend_v the_o one_o public_a by_o the_o uniform_a perpetual_a teach_n of_o pastor_n the_o other_o secret_a by_o the_o teach_n of_o some_o private_a man_n pretend_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v more_o singular_o and_o high_o than_o other_o man_n by_o the_o apostle_n the_o second_o kind_n of_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o secret_a teach_n of_o a_o invisible_a church_n heretic_n have_v pretend_v but_o never_o the_o first_o of_o public_a and_o catholic_a tradition_n the_o cause_n why_o heretic_n prescribe_v the_o course_n to_o resolve_v by_o illumination_n be_v because_o a_o heretic_n will_v not_o admit_v doctrine_n deliver_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o christian_a ancestor_n but_o with_o choice_n receive_v some_o and_o reject_v other_o as_o he_o find_v good_a whence_o he_o have_v the_o electionis_fw-la the_o tertull._n de_fw-fr prescript_n cap._n 6._o haereses_fw-la dictae_fw-la graeca_n voce_fw-mi exinterpretatione_n electionis_fw-la name_n heretic_n that_o be_v one_o who_o be_v his_o own_o carver_n and_o chooser_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n still_o legunt_fw-la still_o augustin_n l._n 7._o de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr c._n 9_o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la scripturas_fw-la catholicas_n legunt_fw-la pretend_v for_o all_o his_o fancy_n scripture_n understand_v by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o catholic_a tradition_n be_v by_o he_o admit_v as_o a_o rule_n infallible_a to_o know_v what_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n preach_v he_o can_v not_o have_v liberty_n to_o choose_v according_a to_o his_o best_a like_n but_o will_v be_v bind_v accipere_fw-la bind_v nobis_fw-la nostro_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la indulgere_fw-la sed_fw-la ꝗ_n apostoli_fw-la fideliter_fw-la consignarunt_fw-la accipere_fw-la to_o receive_v the_o form_n of_o religion_n make_v unto_o he_o by_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n hence_o against_o this_o way_n of_o catholic_a tradition_n he_o band_v with_o might_n and_o main_n charge_v the_o same_o to_o be_v fallible_a that_o error_n may_v secret_o creep_v into_o it_o teach_v man_n to_o retire_v unto_o the_o inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o only_a secure_a mean_n to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o apostolical_a scripture_n which_o the_o apostolical_a interpretation_n of_o they_o against_o this_o enemy_n be_v the_o three_o principle_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v the_o catholic_a to_o wit_n the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o father_n unto_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o child_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o christian_a religion_n heresy_n that_o be_v private_a election_n and_o choice_n may_v have_v no_o place_n about_o this_o principle_n faith_n be_v resolve_v and_o assure_v by_o a_o three_o perfection_n belong_v to_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prime_a verity_n this_o be_v that_o he_o can_v so_o much_o as_o connive_v unto_o falsehood_n whereby_o he_o become_v any_o way_n accessary_a of_o deceive_a then_o that_o simple_o ready_o religious_o believe_v what_o they_o have_v just_a reason_n to_o think_v to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o there_o be_v just_a and_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o full_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o their_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o
reveal_v all_o these_o veritye_n to_o christ_n jesus_n and_o he_o 15._o he_o omnia_fw-la quae_fw-la audivi_fw-la à_fw-la patre_fw-la nota_fw-la feci_fw-la vobis_fw-la joan._n 15._o v._n 15._o again_o to_o his_o apostle_n partly_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o principal_o by_o the_o immediate_a teach_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o shall_v deliver_v 28.20_o deliver_v docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la math._n 28.20_o they_o unto_o mankind_n to_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v every_o where_o over_o the_o world_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n thereof_o four_o that_o the_o 20._o the_o illi_fw-la profecti_fw-la praedicaverunt_fw-la ubique_fw-la marc._n ult._n 20._o apostle_n do_v according_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n &_o deliver_v unto_o they_o partly_o by_o write_v partly_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n the_o 6.20_o the_o o_o timothee_n depositum_fw-la custodi_fw-la 1._o tim._n 6.20_o whole_a entire_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n plant_v a_o universal_a christian_a company_n charge_v they_o to_o keep_v inviolable_o and_o to_o deliver_v 1.2_o deliver_v haec_fw-la commenda_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la hominibus_fw-la qui_fw-la possunt_fw-la alios_fw-la instruere_fw-la 2._o tim._n 1.2_o unto_o their_o posterity_n what_o they_o have_v of_o they_o the_o first_o messenger_n of_o the_o gospel_n five_o though_o the_o apostle_n be_v depart_v &_o their_o primitive_a hearer_n decease_v yet_o there_o still_o remain_v a_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n by_o which_o all_o man_n may_v assure_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o the_o primitive_a church_n receyve_v of_o they_o see_v the_o church_n even_o to_o the_o world_n end_n must_v be_v 4.5.11_o be_v ephes._n 2.20_o etc._n etc._n 4.5.11_o found_v on_o the_o apostle_n and_o believe_v nothing_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v of_o they_o these_o thing_n be_v suppose_v the_o question_n be_v what_o this_o mean_n be_v and_o how_o man_n may_v now_o adays_o so_o many_o age_n after_o their_o death_n know_v certain_o what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v original_o &_o preach_v to_o which_o question_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o last_o and_o final_a resolution_n tradition_n resolution_n note_v that_o the_o minister_n many_o time_n do_v falsify_v the_o jesuit_n tenet_n special_o pag._n 34._o saying_n that_o the_o last_o and_o final_a resolution_n be_v into_o unwritten_a tradition_n &_o not_o into_o scripture_n this_o he_o do_v not_o say_v but_o that_o the_o persuasion_n that_o our_o faith_n be_v true_a be_v final_o resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o that_o it_o be_v divine_a into_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a preach_v but_o what_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n we_o know_v only_o by_o tradition_n thereof_o be_v not_o into_o scripture_n but_o into_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v preface_n succeed_v all_o from_o this_o place_n unto_o the_o first_o argument_n the_o minister_n leave_v out_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o whole_a discourse_n yet_o he_o say_v he_o have_v set_v down_o the_o book_n verbatim_o see_v his_o preface_n the_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o principle_n set_v down_o by_o tertullian_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o golden_a by_o protestant_n commend_v book_n 1.61.21_o book_n tertull._n de_fw-fr prescript_n 1.61.21_o quid_fw-la apostoli_fw-la p●●dicaverint_fw-la praescribam_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la probari_fw-la debere_fw-la quàm_fw-la per_fw-la easdem_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la quas_fw-la ipsi_fw-la condiderunt_fw-la that_o be_v i_o set_v down_o this_o principle_n what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v be_v to_o be_v prove_v no_o otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v by_o which_o prescription_n join_v with_o the_o other_o five_o supposition_n be_v raise_v the_o ladder_n for_o true_a catholic_a resolution_n about_o faith_n set_v down_o by_o the_o say_v tertullian_n on_o which_o a_o christian_a by_o degree_n mount_v unto_o god_n or_o as_o s._n augustine_n 10._o augustine_n august_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la cap._n 10._o say_v ducitur_fw-la pedetentim_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la gradibus_fw-la ad_fw-la summâ_fw-la penetralia_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o ladder_n be_v this_o &_o the_o ascend_a by_o it_o in_o this_o sort_n what_o deo_fw-la what_o tertull._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 21._o &_o 37._o nos_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n apostoli_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la christus_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la i_o believe_v i_o receive_v from_o the_o present_a church_n the_o present_a from_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o primitive_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n and_o christ_n from_o god_n god_n the_o prime_a verity_n from_o no_o other_o fountain_n different_a from_o his_o own_o infallible_a knowledge_n so_o that_o who_o so_o cleave_v not_o to_o the_o present_a church_n firm_o believe_v the_o tradition_n thereof_o as_o be_v come_v down_o by_o succession_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o on_o the_o low_a step_n of_o the_o ladder_n that_o lead_v unto_o god_n the_o revealer_n of_o save_v truth_n successive_a tradition_n unwritten_a be_v the_o last_o and_o final_a ground_n whereon_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o belief_n truth_n belief_n note_v the_o jesuit_n do_v not_o say_v tradition_n be_v the_o last_o ground_n on_o which_o we_o believe_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v save_v truth_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o only_o that_o it_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n so_o mount_v up_o by_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o god_n and_o by_o he_o unto_o all_o necessary_a truth_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n this_o i_o prove_v by_o these_o four_o it_o four_o these_o argument_n as_o they_o convince_v there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v but_o christian_a tradition_n so_o they_o consequent_o convince_v that_o if_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v save_v truth_n god_n must_v assist_v this_o perpetual_a catholic_a tradition_n thereof_o that_o no_o error_n creep_v into_o it_o argument_n the_o first_o argument_n if_o the_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v apostolical_a because_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v believe_v to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o voice_n of_o perpetual_a tradition_n unwritten_a then_o our_o resolution_n that_o our_o faith_n be_v apostolical_a stay_v last_o and_o final_o upon_o tradition_n unwritten_a but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n but_o by_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n unwritten_a conserve_v in_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n for_o what_o other_o proof_n can_v be_v imagine_v except_o one_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o unknown_a the_o the_o minister_n pag._n 19_o to_o title_n add_v inscription_n of_o some_o epistle_n subscription_n &_o insertion_n of_o name_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o book_n but_o neither_o be_v this_o true_a of_o all_o book_n nor_o of_o all_o epistle_n nor_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o satisfy_v a_o man_n for_o may_v not_o a_o counterfayte_n write_v a_o gospel_n for_o example_n in_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n repeat_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o book_n twenty_o time_n so_o it_o be_v childish_a to_o mention_v this_o as_o the_o last_o stay_n of_o persuasion_n for_o what_o more_o childish_a then_o to_o prove_v a_o thing_n unknown_a by_o another_o as_o much_o unknown_a title_n of_o the_o book_n which_o be_v absurd_a see_v doubt_n may_v be_v make_v whether_o those_o title_n be_v set_v on_o the_o book_n by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o of_o which_o doubt_v only_o tradition_n can_v resolve_v us._n beside_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n mark_v s._n luke_n as_o also_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v by_o any_o apostle_n but_o be_v by_o their_o lively_a voice_n and_o suffrage_n recommend_v unto_o christian_n as_o sacred_a &_o divine_a otherwise_o as_o also_o approbârunt_fw-la also_o bilson_n de_fw-fr perpetua_fw-la gubernation_n ecclesiae_fw-la pag._n 85._o historiae_fw-la illae_fw-la à_fw-la marco_n &_o luca_n exaratae_fw-la canonicam_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la suffragi●s_fw-la nactae_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la eas_fw-la lectas_fw-la approbârunt_fw-la m._n bilson_n note_v they_o shall_v never_o have_v obtain_v such_o eminent_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n neither_o shall_v they_o be_v now_o so_o esteem_v but_o upon_o the_o supposal_n of_o apostolical_a approbation_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n see_v these_o writing_n and_o recommend_v the_o same_o unto_o christian_a church_n but_o by_o tradition_n ergo_fw-la the_o last_o and_o high_a ground_n on_o which_o we_o believe_v what_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n sucecede_v they_o for_o we_o may_v distinguish_v three_o property_n of_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n
to_o wit_n to_o be_v true_a to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n to_o be_v preach_v and_o deliver_v of_o the_o apostle_n the_o high_a ground_n by_o which_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v true_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o the_o high_a ground_n on_o which_o i_o be_o resolve_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v reveal_v be_v the_o credit_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n jesus_n &_o his_o apostle_n who_o deliver_v the_o same_o as_o divine_a and_o sacred_a but_o the_o high_a ground_n that_o move_v i_o to_o believe_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v 5._o be_v the_o minister_n and_o especial_o the_o bishop_n chaplin_n pag._n 16._o &_o 17._o charge_n the_o answerer_n to_o resolve_v faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n into_o only_a tradition_n this_o be_v a_o slander_n for_o he_o do_v distinguish_v express_o in_o scripture_n the_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n or_o his_o word_n this_o second_o property_n be_v spiritual_a and_o hide_a and_o believe_v not_o upon_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n direct_o but_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o affirm_v confirm_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o to_o be_v preach_v and_o plant_v in_o the_o world_n be_v a_o public_a sensible_a thing_n &_o so_o be_v know_v by_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n thus_o the_o church_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a be_v build_v upon_o god_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o god_n be_v build_v on_o the_o apostle_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n be_v build_v on_o the_o tradition_n of_o pastor_n succeed_v they_o the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n by_o office_n as_o our_o minister_n grant_n pag._n 9_o lin_v 5._o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n that_o so_o teach_v i_o into_o this_o principle_n 5._o principle_n aug._n count_v epist_n fund_z cap._n 5._o saint_n augustine_n resolve_v his_o faith_n against_o the_o manichee_n who_o pretend_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v be_v corrupt_v confute_v they_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n affirm_v that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n do_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n induce_v he_o assign_v this_o as_o the_o last_o stay_n of_o his_o resolution_n in_o this_o point_n for_o though_o he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v soveraigne_o certain_a and_o true_a upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o as_o sacred_a preach_v it_o yet_o that_o this_o gospel_n as_o we_o have_v it_o come_v incorrupt_a from_o the_o apostle_n he_o can_v have_v no_o strong_a or_o more_o scripture_n more_o the_o minister_n force_v by_o this_o testimony_n grant_v two_o thing_n which_o overthrow_n his_o cause_n first_o pa._n 22._o l._n 13.14_o that_o novice_n and_o simple_a person_n ground_n their_o faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o field_n grant_v appendix_n part_n 1._o pag._n 11._o now_o i_o assume_v but_o the_o faith_n of_o novice_n be_v save_v faith_n as_o s._n aug._n there_o say_v contra_fw-la epist._n fundamenti_fw-la c._n 2._o and_o consequent_o their_o faith_n be_v divine_a ergo_fw-la save_v &_o supernatural_a faith_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n second_o he_o grant_n pag._n 23._o lin_v 2._o &_o 3._o that_o the_o church_n as_o include_v the_o apostle_n can_v prove_v the_o scripture_n whence_o it_o be_v consequent_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o principle_n know_v by_o themselves_o but_o have_v another_o high_a divine_a principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v prove_v the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o apostle_n be_v as_o protestant_n grant_v field_n l._n 4._o of_o church_n c._n 21._o of_o great_a authority_n than_o scripture_n excellent_a proof_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n descend_v by_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n neither_o can_v we_o imagine_v a_o high_a except_o we_o fly_v to_o particular_a &_o private_a revelation_n which_o be_v absurd_a the_o second_o argument_n second_o i_o prove_v that_o common_a unlearned_a people_n the_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n be_v persuade_v about_o all_o substantial_a point_n of_o faith_n by_o tradition_n not_o by_o scripture_n common_a &_o unlearned_a people_n have_v true_a christian_a faith_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n but_o they_o have_v not_o faith_n of_o all_o these_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n ground_v on_o scripture_n for_o they_o can_v neither_o understand_v nor_o read_v any_o scripture_n but_o translate_v into_o vulgar_a language_n &_o so_o if_o they_o believe_v upon_o scrpture_n they_o believe_v upon_o scripture_n translate_v into_o their_o mother_n tongue_n but_o before_o that_o they_o can_v know_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v even_o in_o all_o substantial_a point_n that_o so_o they_o may_v build_v on_o it_o they_o must_v first_o know_v what_o be_v the_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n &_o translate_v &_o to_o this_o proof_n that_o christian_n believe_v their_o creed_n more_o firm_o than_o any_o translation_n the_o minister_n have_v not_o answer_v one_o word_n nor_o can_v answer_v for_o it_o be_v convince_a as_o appear_v by_o this_o syllogism_n persuasion_n more_o certain_a and_o firm_a can_v be_v ground_v on_o persuasion_n less_o firm_a and_o certain_a such_o as_o be_v true_a christian_n believe_v the_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n more_o firm_o than_o they_o do_v that_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v into_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n ergo_fw-la true_a christian_n do_v not_o build_v their_o faith_n of_o the_o creed_n on_o scripture_n translate_v but_o on_o doctrine_n know_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n former_o and_o more_o firm_o than_o that_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v firm_o believe_v they_o so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n translate_v against_o they_o for_o if_o they_o know_v they_o not_o before_o how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o scripture_n in_o place_n that_o concern_v they_o be_v true_o translate_v if_o they_o do_v not_o before_o hand_n firm_o believe_v they_o why_o shall_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o allow_v translation_n that_o agree_v with_o they_o and_o to_o reject_v the_o translation_n that_o differ_v from_o they_o ergo_fw-la believe_v ergo_fw-la the_o minister_n pag._n 26._o say_v that_o ignorant_a man_n resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o scripture_n yet_o not_o into_o scripture_n so_o distinct_o know_v as_o they_o can_v tell_v the_o name_n of_o the_o several_a book_n author_n and_o section_n and_o so_o they_o resolve_v implicit_o not_o explicit_o this_o be_v idle_a for_o if_o they_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v write_v though_o they_o know_v not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o book_n nor_o number_n of_o the_o chapter_n &_o verse_n nor_o the_o formal_a text_n what_o ground_n firm_a they_o their_o creed_n have_v they_o this_o to_o believe_v original_o &_o before_o they_o know_v any_o scripture_n they_o have_v faith_n ground_v on_o the_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n by_o the_o light_n whereof_o they_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o translation_n about_o such_o substantial_a point_n as_o they_o firm_o believe_v by_o tradition_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o protestant_n must_v mean_v if_o they_o have_v any_o true_a meaning_n when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o common_a people_n know_v scripture_n to_o be_v true_o translate_v by_o the_o translate_v the_o the_o minister_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v to_o a_o find_a paradox_n confute_v already_o that_o unlearned_a rustic_n know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n by_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o the_o book_n and_o by_o see_v the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n pag._n 28._o lin_v 3._o he_o add_v lin_v 7._o that_o they_o which_o actual_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n do_v virtual_o &_o mediate_o resolve_v the_o same_o into_o the_o very_a scripture_n though_o they_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o scripture_n this_o be_v frivolous_a and_o false_a for_o the_o pagan_a and_o infidel_n that_o know_v honey_n to_o be_v sweet_a and_o take_v in_o abundance_n to_o be_v hurtful_a shall_v virtual_o resolve_v their_o persuasion_n into_o the_o very_a scripture_n because_o they_o actual_o believe_v a_o thing_n affirm_v in_o scripture_n prou._n 25._o 27._o yea_o the_o jew_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v believe_v a_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n do_v he_o therefore_o resolve_v and_o build_v virtual_o upon_o scripture_n no._n that_o one_o build_v on_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o
teach_v it_o as_o christ_n command_v &_o deliver_v the_o same_o three_o if_o this_o promise_n be_v conditional_a &_o not_o absolute_a then_o by_o this_o place_n the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v to_o last_v absolute_o for_o ever_o but_o only_o so_o long_o as_o she_o christen_v aright_o &_o teach_v the_o truth_n wherein_o according_a to_o this_o protestant_a exposition_n she_o may_v fail_v but_o the_o father_n from_o this_o text_n gather_v against_o the_o donatist_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o fail_v to_o be_v in_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o end_n thereof_o as_o s._n aug._n in_o psalm_n 101._o conc_fw-fr 2._o leo_fw-la epist._n 3._o ad_fw-la pulcheriam_fw-la and_o other_o hence_o prove_v therefore_o the_o sense_n be_v absolute_a his_o church_n shall_v be_v still_o in_o the_o world_n &_o he_o still_o assist_v his_o church_n by_o his_o spirit_n to_o teach_v and_o baptize_v aright_o promise_n of_o wonderful_a comfort_n unto_o they_o that_o pawn_v their_o soul_n &_o salvation_n upon_o god_n word_n deliver_v by_o perpetual_a tradition_n for_o in_o this_o sentence_n appear_v the_o six_o thing_n i_o before_o set_v down_o first_o that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o christian_a church_n all_o day_n not_o want_v in_o the_o world_n so_o much_o as_o one_o day_n till_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n second_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a for_o the_o church_n that_o always_o teach_v &_o christen_v all_o nation_n must_v needs_o be_v visible_a but_o this_o church_n always_o teach_v and_o christen_v all_o nation_n i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o not_o with_o you_o sit_v in_o corner_n or_o hide_v under_o ground_n but_o with_o you_o exercise_v the_o office_n enjoin_v you_o in_o the_o word_n precedent_n docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la baptizantes_fw-la three_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o apostolical_a for_o to_o his_o apostle_n christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n not_o with_o you_o in_o your_o own_o person_n but_o with_o you_o in_o your_o successor_n in_o who_o you_o shall_v continue_v until_o the_o world_n end_n ergo_fw-la a_o lawful_a company_n of_o bishop_n pastor_n &_o doctor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n must_v be_v perpetual_o in_o the_o world_n forthly_a this_o church_n be_v universal_a item_fw-la in_o mundum_fw-la universum_fw-la where_o i_o will_v be_v always_o with_o you_o five_o this_o church_n be_v one_o not_o divide_v into_o part_n because_o it_o teach_v and_o believe_v uniform_o all_o that_o christ_n deliver_v and_o command_v without_o faction_n sect_n or_o part_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n six_o this_o church_n be_v always_o holy_a for_o doctrine_n never_o deliver_v or_o teach_v any_o falsehood_n i_o who_o be_o the_o truth_n be_o always_o with_o you_o teach_v all_o nation_n holy_a also_o for_o life_n christ_n the_o holy_a of_o holye_n assist_v and_o make_v her_o able_a to_o convert_v infidel_n which_o she_o can_v not_o well_o do_v luther_n do_v the_o minister_n p._n 85._o &_o 86.102_o allege_v diverse_a father_n &_o scholman_n to_o prove_v that_o now_o miracle_n be_v cease_v &_o not_o necessary_a answer_n the_o minister_n shall_v distinguish_v as_o the_o father_n do_v who_o make_v two_o manner_n of_o being_n of_o miracle_n to_o wit_n ordinary_a &_o extraordinary_a and_o affirm_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n miracle_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o plant_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o world_n joan._n 5.24_o act._n 4.29.30_o and_o then_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v ordinary_o annex_v unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o preach_v yea_o so_o that_o every_o christian_a common_o have_v that_o gift_n in_o some_o kind_n or_o other_o 1._o cor._n 12.28_o act._n 8.17_o &_o 10._o 4.6_o second_o that_o since_o the_o plant_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o twelve_o fisherman_n this_o be_v the_o miracle_n of_o miracle_n no_o further_a miracle_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o man_n unto_o who_o this_o be_v know_v and_o therefore_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v cease_v to_o be_v ordinary_o annex_v to_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v or_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n as_o before_o it_o be_v aug._n de_fw-fr civit._n l._n 22._o c._n 8._o gregor_n 27._o moral_n c._n 1._o three_o notwithstanding_o in_o all_o age_n there_o be_v be_v and_o shall_v ever_o be_v some_o special_a place_n and_o person_n extraordinary_o endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o christian_n conversion_n of_o some_o remote_a nation_n that_o know_v not_o the_o first_o miraculous_a plant_n of_o our_o religion_n by_o certain_a &_o celebrious_a fame_n &_o of_o miracle_n in_o this_o kind_a the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n &_o all_o christian_a history_n be_v full_a see_v s._n aug._n l._n 22._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 8._o &_o gregory_n in_o his_o dialogue_n the_o protestant_a church_n not_o before_o luther_n without_o miracle_n and_o token_n of_o wonderful_a sanctity_n at_o the_o least_o in_o she_o more_o eminent_a preacher_n that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n from_o &_o by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o receyve_v the_o tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n §._o 5._o this_o ground_n be_v lay_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n cleave_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n the_o first_o argument_n there_o must_v always_o be_v in_o the_o world_n one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n that_o be_v a_o church_n deliver_v doctrine_n uniform_o thereby_o make_v they_o credible_a universal_o thereby_o make_v they_o famous_o know_v to_o mankind_n holy_o so_o make_v they_o certain_a &_o such_o as_o on_o they_o we_o may_v secure_o rely_v apostolical_o so_o make_v they_o perpetual_o flow_v without_o change_n unto_o the_o present_a christianity_n in_o the_o channel_n of_o a_o never-interrupted_n succession_n of_o bishopp_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o church_n 13._o church_n unto_o this_o argument_n the_o minister_n pag._n 104._o make_v answer_v that_o his_o protestant_a church_n be_v before_o luther_n in_o essence_n &_o kind_n though_o it_o begin_v in_o luther_n touch_v the_o name_n and_o some_o thing_n accidental_a in_o proof_n whereof_o he_o thus_o write_v in_o all_o age_n before_o luther_n some_o person_n hold_v the_o substantial_a article_n of_o our_o religion_n both_o in_o the_o roman_a &_o grecian_a church_n and_o by_o name_n the_o grecian_n maintain_v with_o we_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v no_o primacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n above_o or_o over_o all_o other_o church_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o infallible_a in_o faith_n they_o deny_v purgatory_n private_a mass_n sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o they_o propugne_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n in_o this_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o waldense_n thaborites_n of_o bohemia_n wickliffi●ts_v mantayn_v the_o same_o doctrine_n in_o substance_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o learned_a pontifician_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o all_o the_o minister_n have_v say_v or_o can_v say_v for_o his_o church_n before_o luther_n the_o same_o be_v insufficient_a false_a more_o for_o anabaptist_n than_o protestant_n this_o i_o prove_v in_o general_a this_o pedigree_n be_v insufficient_a for_o two_o reason_n first_o because_o it_o be_v not_o for_o all_o age_n the_o grecian_n be_v unite_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o the_o year_n 1060._o the_o waldensian_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n 1160._o now_o there_o remain_v six_o or_o seven_o age_n since_o the_o pretend_a apostasy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o which_o the_o minister_n do_v not_o name_v any_o professor_n that_o be_v protestant_n for_o essence_n and_o kind_n second_o because_o protestant_n teach_v that_o the_o most_o substantial_a article_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v justification_n by_o special_a faith_n only_o and_o not_o by_o work_n and_o merit_n of_o grace_n as_o all_o know_v but_o these_o pretend_a professor_n namely_o the_o waldense_n &_o wickliffist_n hold_v rigorous_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n in_o so_o much_o as_o wickliff_n say_v let_v every_o man_n confide_v in_o his_o merit_n for_o which_o saying_n he_o be_v refute_v by_o the_o catholic_a author_n thomas_n waldensis_n tom._n 3._o c._n 7.8.9_o grecian_n no_o protestant_n in_o essence_n in_o particular_a the_o pedigree_n be_v notorious_o false_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o grecian_n who_o can_v without_o impudence_n be_v name_v as_o protestant_n according_a to_o essence_n and_o kind_n first_o they_o hold_v damnable_a heresye_n and_o substantial_a error_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n so_o wit_n invocation_n of_o saint_n adoration_n of_o image_n as_o they_o profess_v in_o their_o censure_n
impudence_n be_v it_o for_o protestant_n to_o affirm_v that_o rome_n be_v pure_a protestant_a for_o the_o first_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o that_o afterward_o the_o pope_n change_v protestancy_n into_o papacy_n bring_v in_o image_n invocation_n of_o saint_n auricular_a confession_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o like_a horrible_a noveltye_n and_o change_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o can_v not_o but_o have_v be_v note_v if_o they_o have_v be_v novelty_n whereas_o all_o history_n be_v silent_a herein_o yea_o they_o mention_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n how_o pope_n ever_o resist_v they_o that_o will_v have_v innovate_v about_o these_o point_n monument_n of_o history_n and_o antiquity_n who_o be_v gospel_n be_v what_o the_o minister_n here_o say_v pag._n 116._o that_o the_o pharisee_n do_v say_v as_o we_o do_v that_o they_o have_v their_o tradition_n by_o succession_n from_o moses_n urge_v our_o saviour_n that_o he_o can_v not_o prove_v by_o history_n that_o they_o have_v change_v their_o faith_n and_o our_o saviour_n leave_v history_n refute_v they_o by_o scripture_n this_o be_v a_o figment_n of_o his_o own_o head_n out_o of_o mere_a desire_n to_o make_v the_o pharisee_n seem_v like_a to_o we_o and_o himself_o to_o our_o saviour_n for_o where_o do_v he_o read_v that_o pharisee_n so_o plead_v against_o our_o saviour_n and_o what_o blasphemy_n to_o think_v that_o our_o saviour_n can_v not_o have_v refute_v they_o by_o history_n have_v they_o so_o plead_v show_v where_o when_o and_o by_o who_o they_o begin_v the_o truth_n be_v the_o pharisee_n pretend_v not_o their_o observation_n as_o succession_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o moses_n but_o as_o tradition_n of_o their_o own_o some_o they_o urge_v as_o deduction_n from_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o protestant-like_a do_v pretend_v to_o understand_v better_a &_o more_o rigorous_o than_o any_o before_o they_o such_o be_v their_o doctrine_n against_o heal_a disease_a person_n &_o do_v small_a labour_n as_o gather_v ear_n of_o corn_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n much_o like_o our_o protestant_a sabba●arians_n other_o they_o teach_v as_o singular_a invention_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n find_v out_o by_o themselves_o for_o the_o more_o exact_a observance_n of_o the_o law_n some_o of_o which_o invention_n be_v impious_a some_o frivolous_a some_o pious_a and_o therefore_o allow_v by_o our_o saviour_n as_o that_o of_o pay_v tithe_n unto_o god_n out_o of_o every_o little_a herb_n a_o tradition_n of_o their_o own_n not_o command_v in_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o approve_v by_o our_o saviour_n as_o bind_v this_o you_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v and_o not_o to_o have_v omit_v that_o other_o luc._n 11.42_o they_o be_v rebuke_v for_o observe_v their_o otherwise_o pious_a invention_n for_o vain_a glory_n covetousness_n &_o for_o prefer_v small_a matter_n because_o they_o be_v their_o own_o above_o the_o precept_n of_o god_n law_n all_o this_o be_v evident_a unto_o they_o that_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o gospel_n never_o note_v as_o deliver_v contrary_a doctrine_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o apparent_o universal_a 16.17.18_o universal_a the_o christian_n call_v the_o chaldaean_a assyrian_n the_o jacobite_n or_o cophti_n the_o georgian_o the_o aethiopian_o or_o abyssine_n the_o thomaeans_n in_o india_n the_o armenian_n special_o those_o term_v franc-armenians_n maronit_n be_v unite_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n &_o have_v often_o &_o late_o make_v their_o obedience_n unto_o the_o pope_n &_o profess_v to_o hold_v in_o all_o point_v the_o catholic_a roman_a faith_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o notitia_fw-la episcopatuum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d miraei_n lib._n 1._o c._n 16.17.18_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n with_o credit_n and_o authority_n that_o whole_a mankind_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o her_o doctrine_n for_o the_o embrace_n thereof_o conspicuous_o verity_n conspicuous_o the_o minister_n pag._n 107._o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o prove_v we_o have_v unity_n but_o we_o must_v prove_v we_o have_v unity_n in_o verity_n for_o the_o turk_n have_v unity_n and_o yet_o have_v not_o verity_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o unity_n and_o consent_n of_o a_o grand_a diffuse_a multitude_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n in_o the_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n about_o religion_n do_v evident_o reduce_v religion_n to_o the_o first_o external_a author_n &_o publisher_n &_o the_o credit_n of_o his_o word_n the_o unity_n &_o consent_n of_o mahometan_n in_o their_o tradition_n from_o mahomet_n prove_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v mahomet_n and_o consequent_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o christian_n the_o religion_n of_o a_o false_a prophet_n our_o unity_n and_o consent_n in_o the_o christian_a tradition_n of_o our_o ancestor_n from_o christ_n prove_v evident_o our_o religion_n to_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o divine_a and_o true_a as_o certain_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o christ_n jesus_n be_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n and_o god_n the_o author_n of_o truth_n so_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n prove_v direct_o her_o religion_n to_o be_v christ_n and_o then_o by_o consequence_n to_o be_v divine_a verity_n one_o the_o professor_n thereof_o agre_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n howsoever_o they_o differ_v about_o small_a undefined_a question_n most_o manifest_o holy_a in_o all_o kind_n of_o high_a and_o admirable_a sanctity_n give_v notorious_a sign_n and_o token_n thereof_o strike_v example_n strike_v what_o the_o minister_n here_o bring_v out_o of_o some_o zealous_o complain_v against_o vice_n be_v already_o by_o we_o answer_v &_o be_v long_o ago_o by_o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la cred_a c._n 5._o where_o he_o name_v these_o sanctitye_n as_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n continentia_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la tenuissimum_fw-la victum_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o aquae_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la quotidiana_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o per_fw-la contextos_fw-la plures_fw-la dies_fw-la continuata_fw-la ieiunia_fw-la castitas_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la coniugij_fw-la prolisue_fw-la contemptum_fw-la patientia_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la cruces_fw-la flammasue_fw-la neglectas_fw-la liberalitas_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la patrimonia_fw-la distributa_fw-la pauperibus_fw-la thus_o s._n augustine_n add_v few_o i_o grant_v in_o the_o church_n do_v these_o thing_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o other_o multitude_n and_o few_o do_v they_o well_o &_o prudent_o yet_o the_o people_n approve_v applaud_v love_n admire_v they_o and_o accuse_v themselves_o they_o can_v do_v the_o like_a so_o rise_v up_o towards_o god_n by_o these_o example_n admiration_n into_o carnal_a man_n that_o be_v not_o altogether_o profane_a and_o diffuse_v abroad_o the_o sweet_a odour_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o christian_a name_n in_o which_o proof_n that_o these_o propertye_n agree_v to_o the_o roman_a and_o be_v want_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n i_o will_v not_o enlarge_v myself_o as_o i_o otherwise_o may_v aswell_o not_o to_o weary_v your_o majesty_n as_o also_o not_o to_o seem_v to_o diffide_v the_o matter_n be_v most_o clear_a of_o your_o majesty_n judgement_n wherefore_o it_o be_v more_o than_o clear_a that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n by_o who_o tradition_n christian_a religion_n have_v be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v ever_o continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o world_n end_n the_o three_o argument_n protestant_n have_v the_o holy_a scripture_n deliver_v unto_o they_o by_o and_o from_o the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n but_o they_o receive_v they_o from_o no_o other_o church_n than_o the_o roman_a ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n the_o mayor_n i_o prove_v if_o protestant_n have_v not_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n by_o and_o from_o the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolical_a church_n they_o can_v be_v certain_a they_o have_v the_o true_a incorrupt_a text_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v and_o recommend_v as_o divine_a to_o the_o first_o christian_n see_v the_o tradition_n of_o any_o other_o church_n be_v fallible_a therein_o fallible_a the_o minister_n pag._n 119._o object_v against_o this_o that_o if_o we_o can_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o scripture_n except_o the_o immediate_a deliverer_n thereof_o be_v infallible_a than_o we_o can_v be_v sure_a except_o we_o have_v the_o scripture_n immediate_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o general_a council_n who_o only_o be_v infallible_a answer_n we_o must_v as_o theology_n teach_v distinguish_v immediationem_fw-la suppositi_fw-la &_o immediationem_fw-la virtutis_fw-la that_o be_v the_o immediate_a person_n which_o deliver_v scripture_n and_o the_o immediate_a authority_n upon_o the_o credit_n whereof_o scripture_n be_v deliver_v the_o person_n immediate_o deliver_v may_v be_v a_o single_a minister_n fallible_a take_v sole_o by_o himself_o but_o the_o immediate_a authority_n that_o deliver_v scripture_n be_v ever_o and_o must_v still_o be_v infallible_a to_o wit_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n for_o we_o neither_o must_v nor_o can_v believe_v
decease_v many_o year_n before_o be_v the_o author_n of_o salvation_n unto_o they_o that_o have_v lose_v themselves_o by_o their_o sloth_n patrocinatur_fw-la sloth_n homil._n 2._o in_o psal._n 50._o david_n mortuus_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la merita_fw-la eius_fw-la vigent_fw-la homo_fw-la mortuus_fw-la vivo_fw-la patrocinatur_fw-la david_n be_v dead_a but_o his_o merit_n live_v the_o dead_a man_n be_v the_o patron_n of_o the_o live_n remittit_fw-la live_n serm._n de_fw-fr virtute_fw-la &_o vitio_fw-la ad_fw-la mortuos_fw-la confugiens_fw-la propter_fw-la eos_fw-la peccata_fw-la remittit_fw-la for_o their_o sake_n that_o be_v dead_a god_n forgive_v sin_n s._n ephrem_fw-la merear_fw-la ephrem_fw-la ephem_n serm_n de_fw-fr lau._n ss_z martyrum_fw-la ut_fw-la vestris_fw-la precibus_fw-la saluari_fw-la merear_fw-la assist_v i_o o_o holy_a martyr_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n that_o by_o your_o prayer_n i_o may_v be_v save_v s._n augustine_n svi_fw-la augustine_n august_n lib._n qq_n in_o exod_n q._n 108._o significantur_fw-la martyr_n sancti_fw-la quorun_v orationibus_fw-la propitiatur_fw-la deus_fw-la peccatis_fw-la populi_fw-la svi_fw-la by_o the_o red_a skin_n of_o the_o wheather_n wherewith_o god_n will_v have_v the_o u●yles_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n cover_v we_o present_o understand_v our_o saviour_n make_v red_a and_o purple_v with_o his_o blood_n in_o his_o passion_n but_o they_o likewise_o signify_v the_o holy_a martyr_n by_o who_o prayer_n god_n be_v propitiate_v and_o appease_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n s._n maximus_n say_v sanctitate_fw-la say_v maximus_n serm_n de_fw-fr martyr_n tauric_n euadimus_fw-la inferni_fw-la tenebras_fw-la propriis_fw-la eorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la attamen_fw-la consocii_fw-la sanctitate_fw-la by_o devotion_n unto_o saint_n we_o avoid_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n by_o their_o very_a merit_n be_v their_o fellow_n in_o sanctity_n s._n euthymius_n precibus_fw-la euthymius_n s._n euthym_n monach●●_n in_o encomio_fw-la ad_fw-la beatam_fw-la virginem_fw-la mariam_n dum_fw-la hic_fw-la manemus_fw-la nos_fw-la protegas_fw-la supplicamus_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la nobis_fw-la parcat_fw-la filius_fw-la tuus_fw-la &_o deus_fw-la perennibus_fw-la tuis_fw-la precibus_fw-la o_o unspoted_a virgin_n mother_n thy_o son_n and_o god_n pardon_v we_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o incessancy_n of_o thy_o pray_v for_o us._n and_o can_v the_o holy_a father_n think_v worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n with_o confidence_n in_o their_o merit_n not_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o so_o constant_o teach_v and_o commend_v to_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o five_o demonstration_n that_o which_o the_o father_n do_v practice_v in_o their_o great_a need_n and_o in_o the_o chief_a act_n of_o religion_n when_o the_o use_n of_o true_a christian_a devotion_n be_v most_o necessary_a that_o they_o hold_v as_o assure_v and_o certain_a devotion_n &_o exercise_v of_o divine_a faith_n and_o christian_a piety_n such_o be_v the_o worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n with_o confidence_n in_o their_o merit_n unto_o which_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n do_v fly_v in_o their_o great_a distress_n s._n justina_n virgin_n and_o martyr_n be_v strong_o assault_v with_o fleshly_a temptation_n cause_v by_o magic_a incantation_n flee_v as_o s._n nazianzen_n write_v ferret_n write_v nazian_n orat_fw-la in_o s._n cyprian_n mariam_n virginem_fw-la rogavit_fw-la ut_fw-la periclitanti_fw-la virgini_fw-la opem_fw-la ferret_n unto_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n entreat_v she_o to_o assist_v a_o virgin_n that_o be_v in_o that_o danger_n whereby_o she_o get_v the_o victory_n s._n nazianzen_n himself_o be_v in_o the_o like_a affliction_n with_o great_a humility_n open_o in_o the_o church_n pray_v unto_o s._n basil_n etc._n basil_n idem_fw-la orat_fw-la in_o s._n basil._n o_o sacrum_n &_o divinum_fw-la caput_fw-la carnis_fw-la stimulum_fw-la etc._n etc._n tuis_fw-la siste_v precibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n o_o dear_a saint_n look_v down_o on_o we_o from_o heaven_n and_o either_o stay_n with_o thy_o prayer_n this_o sting_n of_o the_o flesh_n give_v i_o of_o god_n for_o my_o instruction_n or_o else_o encourage_v i_o manful_o to_o resist_v it_o theodosius_n 33._o theodosius_n ruffin_n l._n 2._o histor._n c._n 33._o emperor_n be_v to_o go_v in_o expedition_n against_o eugenius_n the_o pagan_a tyrant_n make_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n clergy_n and_o people_n solemn_a letanye_n &_o procession_n unto_o the_o tomb_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n where_o prostrate_a on_o the_o ground_n before_o their_o shrine_n auxilia_fw-la sibi_fw-la fida_fw-la intercessione_n sanctorum_fw-la poscebat_fw-la crave_v assure_v assistance_n by_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n general_n counsel_n be_v to_o decide_v controversy_n about_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o religion_n 11._o religion_n council_n chalcedon_n can_v 11._o the_o whole_a council_n pray_v unto_o saint_n as_o that_o most_o holy_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n holy_a flavian_n live_v with_o god_n the_o bless_a martyr_n pray_v for_o us._n as_o also_o do_v s._n augustine_n suis._n augustine_n augustine_n lib._n 5._o the_o baptism_n contr_n donatist_n cap._n 2._o adiunet_n nos_fw-la cyprianꝰ_n orationibus_fw-la suis._n enter_v into_o the_o discussion_n of_o a_o most_o difficile_a controversy_n prefix_v this_o devotion_n holy_a cyprian_a help_v we_o with_o his_o prayer_n in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o martyrdom_n when_o they_o be_v present_o to_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n they_o do_v invocate_v saint_n as_o do_v saint_n acyndimus_fw-la final_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n at_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n still_o have_v use_v the_o same_o as_o appeareth_z by_o all_o ancient_a chrysostome_n ancient_a the_o roman_a that_o of_o jerusalem_n the_o aethiopian_a anaphora_fw-la syriaca_fw-la that_o of_o milan_n s._n basill_n s._n chrysostome_n liturgy_n that_o be_v extant_a for_o though_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o act_n of_o sacrifice_n do_v not_o invocate_v saint_n by_o direct_a and_o formal_a prayer_n as_o say_v s._n augustine_n petre_n augustine_n august_n l._n 8._o de_fw-fr civet_n c._n 27._o quis_fw-la audivit_fw-la stantem_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la ad_fw-la altar_n etc._n etc._n dicere_fw-la in_o precibus_fw-la offero_fw-la tibi_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la petre_n who_o ever_o hear_v the_o priest_n be_v at_o the_o altar_n to_o say_v i_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o thou_o peter_n or_o to_o thou_o paul_n yet_o the_o same_o apostol_n same_o idem_fw-la tract_n 8._o in_o joan._n sic_fw-la eos_fw-la commemoramus_fw-la ut_fw-la magis_fw-la orent_fw-la ipsi_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la ut_fw-la eorum_fw-la vestigiis_fw-la inhaereamus_fw-la &_o serm_n 27._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apostol_n s._n augustine_n do_v witness_v that_o at_o the_o holy_a table_n commemoration_n be_v make_v of_o martyr_n that_o they_o will_v pray_v for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v follow_v their_o step_n and_o s_n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n before_o s._n augustine_n nostras_fw-la augustine_n cyrill_n hierosol_n cathec_fw-la 5._o cùm_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la offerimus_fw-la memoriam_fw-la facimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n primùm_fw-la patriarcharun_n prophetarum_fw-la martyrum_fw-la ut_fw-la deus_fw-la orationibus_fw-la illorum_fw-la &_o deprecationibus_fw-la suscipiat_fw-la preces_fw-la nostras_fw-la when_o we_o offer_v sacrifice_v we_o make_v commemoration_n of_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n martyr_n etc._n etc._n that_o god_n by_o their_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n will_v admit_v of_o our_o petition_n wherefore_o see_v the_o most_o holy_a and_o ancient_a father_n in_o their_o own_o most_o grievous_a distress_n in_o the_o great_a necessity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o business_n of_o high_a universal_a importance_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o most_o dread_a christian_a sacrifice_n do_v use_v prayer_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n with_o assure_a confidence_n in_o their_o merit_n who_o can_v doubt_v but_o they_o hold_v the_o same_o as_o a_o point_n of_o christian_a religion_n whereof_o they_o be_v assure_v by_o faith_n &_o god_n express_a word_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n the_o sixth_o demonstration_n what_o the_o father_n hold_v as_o a_o christian_a custom_n and_o doctrine_n confirm_v by_o most_o certain_a and_o evident_a miracle_n that_o they_o hold_v as_o a_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a truth_n the_o father_n hold_v worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n with_o confidence_n in_o their_o merit_n as_o a_o christian_a devotion_n confirm_v by_o most_o manifest_a and_o certain_a miracle_n as_o 10._o as_o august_n lib._n 22._o de_fw-la civitat_fw-la c._n 9_o etc._n etc._n 10._o s._n augustine_n say_v miracle_n be_v do_v by_o the_o intercession_n and_o impetration_n if_o not_o also_o by_o the_o immediate_a operation_n of_o saint_n and_o again_o martyr_n do_v miracle_n or_o rather_o god_n for_o the_o prayer_n &_o intercession_n of_o martyr_n in_o confirmation_n whereof_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n basill_n nazianzen_n nissen_n chrysostome_n ambrose_n hierome_n augustine_n prudentius_n paulinus_n gregory_n the_o great_a gregory_n turonensis_n and_o other_o may_v be_v plentiful_o allege_v the_o seven_o demonstration_n what_o the_o father_n teach_v as_o a_o necessary_a supernatural_a duty_n of_o christian_a humility_n they_o teach_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o father_n
theodos._n nor_o as_o the_o sanctifier_n of_o our_o soul_n dwell_v in_o the_o same_o by_o grace_n hierom_n in_o proverb_n c._n 2._o nullum_fw-la invocare_fw-la id●●_n intus_fw-la orando_fw-la vocare_fw-la nisi_fw-la deum_fw-la debemus_fw-la three_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o invocate_v saint_n by_o direct_a prayer_n in_o the_o lyturgy_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n the_o devotion_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v to_o god_n only_o augustine_n lib._n 22._o the_o civet_n c._n 10._o carthag_n 4._o c._n 23._o four_o that_o our_o friend_n that_o be_v decease_v do_v not_o now_o hear_v we_o in_o the_o familiar_a manner_n they_o be_v wont_v converse_v with_o us._n hierom._n ad_fw-la heliodor_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la nepotiam_fw-la whatsoever_o i_o write_v seem_v to_o be_v dead_a &_o 〈◊〉_d because_o nepotian_n do_v not_o hear_v it_o to_o wit_n i●_n visible_a manner_n delight_v therein_o and_o applaud_v the_o same_o as_o he_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v in_o his_o life-time_n 6._o life-time_n hence_o appear_v the_o impertinency_n of_o the_o minister_n that_o so_o often_o urge_v this_o place_n of_o s._n hierome_n pag._n 29.2_o lin_v 22._o orthodox_n pa._n 54._o li._n 6._o five_o that_o they_o do_v not_o know_v what_o be_v do_v in_o this_o world_n by_o their_o natural_a force_n augustine_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la c._n 16._o per_fw-la divinam_fw-la potentiam_fw-la martyr_n vivorum_fw-la rebus_fw-la intersunt_fw-la quoniam_fw-la defuncti_fw-la per_fw-la naturam_fw-la propriam_fw-la vivorum_fw-la rebus_fw-la interest_n non_fw-la possunt_fw-la six_o speak_v unto_o some_o decease_a person_n they_o make_v a_o if_o whether_o they_o hear_v they_o or_o not_o because_o they_o speak_v unto_o such_o as_o they_o know_v not_o certain_o to_o be_v saint_n nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 3._o in_o julian._n praise_n julian._n the_o minister_n here_o say_v do_v not_o the_o father_n reckon_v constantine_n to_o be_v in_o joy_n and_o glory_n and_o yet_o gregory_n nazianzen_n use_v a_o apostrophe_n to_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o great_a constantine_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o thing_n i_o answer_v you_o falsify_v the_o text_n of_o nazianzen_n both_o in_o the_o greek_a &_o in_o your_o english_a translation_n for_o his_o word_n be_v hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o great_a constantius_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o thing_n yea_o that_o we_o may_v see_v you_o corrupt_v the_o text_n wilful_o &_o against_o your_o conscience_n even_o in_o this_o very_a reply_n &_o in_o this_o point_n ●f_a controversy_n you_o cite_v the_o same_o pag._n 359._o light_v a._n in_o this_o manner_n audi_fw-la etiam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d constantij_fw-la magni_fw-la anima_fw-la siquis_fw-la mortuus_fw-la sensus_fw-la est_fw-la hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o ●reat_a constantius_n etc._n etc._n now_o constantius_n be_v a_o arian_n and_o a_o persecutor_n of_o catholic_n unto_o his_o die_a day_n though_o on_o his_o death_n bed_n it_o be_v say_v ●e_v make_v some_o kind_n of_o repentance_n hence_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n may_v doubt_v ●f_o his_o be_v in_o glory_n and_o say_v hear_v if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o ●●inges_n the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o funeral_n oration_n for_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n where_o he_o say_v sister_n admit_v of_o this_o oration_n in_o lieu_n of_o many_o funeral_n offering_n if_o this_o reward_n be_v give_v to_o holy_a soul_n to_o feel_v these_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_n of_o she_o hear_v his_o prayer_n but_o only_o whether_o she_o receive_v a_o humane_a natural_a content_n in_o that_o his_o affectuous_a panigyricall_a make_v in_o her_o praise_n this_o truth_n suppose_v i_o can_v but_o conceive_v that_o your_o majesty_n profess_v so_o much_o love_n to_o the_o first_o primitive_a age_n may_v deceive_v satisfaction_n about_o this_o point_n the_o cause_n of_o protestant_n dislike_n be_v weak_a and_o not_o to_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o strength_n of_o so_o long_o continue_v authority_n as_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v in_o their_o eight_o usual_a exception_n invocation_n of_o saint_n not_o to_o be_v dislike_v because_o not_o express_v in_o scripture_n §._o 2._o and_o first_o i_o must_v satisfy_v the_o transcendentall_a cause_n of_o their_o dislike_n rhem._n dislike_n confess_v august_n art_n 12._o fulke_o against_o rhem._n which_o be_v that_o worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n decease_v be_v not_o where_o express_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n without_o express_a warrant_n whereof_o nothing_o may_v lawful_o be_v do_v that_o belong_v to_o religion_n but_o this_o though_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o devotion_n in_o the_o conceit_n of_o common_a people_n be_v altogether_o unworthy_a of_o the_o erudition_n of_o any_o learned_a protestant_n for_o howsoever_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o separation_n they_o do_v mandato_fw-la do_v luther_n l_o de_fw-la seruo_fw-la arb_n &_o serm_n de_fw-fr cruse_n sive_fw-la expresso_fw-la dei_fw-la mandato_fw-la cry_v for_o express_v scripture_n express_v command_n o●_n the_o write_a word_n yet_o now_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d go_v 89._o go_v wotton_n in_o his_o trial_n pag._n 89._o from_o that_o principle_n as_o they_o be_v exceed_o angry_a 228._o angry_a john_n white_a in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 228._o with_o we_o that_o w●_n shall_v think_v that_o any_o of_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d any_o time_n broacher_n of_o such_o a_o absurdity_n wherefore_o in_o their_o write_a book_n wh●●_n they_o teach_v in_o pulpit_n i_o know_v not_o they_o 6._o they_o d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o whitaker_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scrip._n cont_n 1._o q._n 6._o disclaim_v from_o express_a scripture_n and_o think_v it_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n of_o a_o christ●●●_n custom_n that_o the_o same_o be_v scripture_n be_v note_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n and_o another_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n all_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o every_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v so_o ground_v on_o scripture_n that_o it_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n ground_v ●●_o scripture_n that_o be_v may_v be_v deduce_v by_o good_a discourse_n from_o truth_n reveal_v therein_o 〈◊〉_d be_v prove_v consonant_n to_o the_o rule_n &_o principle_n thereof_o according_a to_o which_o ample_a extent_n of_o scripture_n unto_o thing_n deducible_a from_o they_o or_o consonant_n unto_o they_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a custom_n that_o have_v not_o warrant_n in_o god_n word_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v this_o only_a we_o require_v that_o ignorant_a people_n be_v not_o judge_n of_o such_o inference_n a_o office_n so_o far_o above_o their_o capacity_n as_o i_o be_o persuade_v no_o unlearned_a man_n that_o have_v in_o he_o any_o spark_n of_o humility_n or_o any_o mediocrity_n of_o judgement_n will_v undertake_v it_o for_o no_o man_n be_v competent_a to_o judge_v assure_o of_o argument_n by_o deduction_n from_o scripture_n that_o have_v not_o exact_a skill_n of_o scripture_n to_o know_v the_o false_a sense_n from_o the_o true_a as_o of_o logic_n to_o distinguish_v syllogism_n from_o paralogisme_n be_v able_a to_o give_v sentence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o principle_n by_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o inference_n by_o the_o other_o a_o thing_n so_o hard_o as_o even_o learned_a divines_n do_v much_o suspect_v their_o own_o sufficiency_n to_o judge_v of_o deduction_n &_o dare_v not_o absolute_o pronounce_v their_o sentence_n but_o refer_v the_o same_o to_o definition_n of_o authority_n which_o beside_o skill_n of_o scripture_n &_o logic_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n perpetual_a assistance_n in_o teach_v the_o christian_a church_n wherefore_o if_o protestant_n will_v bind_v we_o to_o bring_v express_a scripture_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o imag_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o saintes_n they_o must_v themselves_o likewise_o be_v bind_v to_o bring_v express_a scripture_n against_o anabaptist_n for_o scripture_n for_o d._n field_n l._n 4._o of_o the_o church_n c._n 20._o say_v it_o be_v not_o where_o express_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n christen_v of_o infant_n and_o for_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o sunday_n in_o lieu_n of_o the_o ancient_a sabboath_n day_n for_o their_o dedicate_a of_o practice_n of_o concern_v the_o protestant_n keep_v festival_n day_n of_o saint_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n the_o minister_n say_v not_o a_o word_n which_o be_v tacit_o to_o grant_v that_o this_o duty_n of_o religion_n be_v use_v pious_o by_o the_o english_a church_n although_o the_o same_o want_v the_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n why_o then_o may_v not_o catholic_n pray_v unto_o saintes_n though_o there_o be_v no_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n for_o such_o practice_n day_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n for_o the_o appear_v the_o concern_v the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 302._o that_o it_o be_v
mysterijs_fw-la initiantur_fw-la cap._n ●_o moses_n his_o word_n change_v the_o water_n of_o egypt_n into_o blood_n &_o again_o turn_v they_o from_o blood_n into_o water_n if_o so_o great_a be_v the_o benediction_n of_o man_n what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o divine_a consecration_n where_o the_o very_a word_n of_o our_o saviour_n work_v the_o word_n of_o elias_n have_v power_n to_o bring_v down_o fire_n from_o heaven_n &_o shall_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n have_v force_n to_o change_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o element_n again_o 4._o again_o ambros._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la s●cram_fw-la cap._n 4._o thou_o see_v how_o work_n &_o efficacious_a be_v the_o word_n of_o christ._n if_o therefore_o such_o virtue_n be_v in_o his_o word_n that_o thereby_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o receive_v be_v how_o much_o more_o have_v it_o power_n that_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v still_o remain_v in_o the_o general_a latitude_n of_o be_v &_o according_a to_o the_o sensible_a accident_n and_o be_v convert_v into_o another_o substance_n viii_o four_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o transmutation_n teach_v by_o the_o father_n be_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n bind_v we_o to_o abnegate_n our_o sense_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v what_o we_o seem_v to_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n ix_o theophilact_n matth._n theophilact_n theophilact_n c._n 4._o 26._o matth._n bread_n be_v transelemented_a or_o transform_v by_o a_o ineffable_a operation_n although_o to_o we_o it_o seem_v bread_n because_o we_o be_v weak_a and_o have_v horror_n to_o eat_v raw_a flesh_n especial_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n for_o this_o reason_n bread_n appear_v but_o in_o essence_n and_o substance_n it_o be_v not_o bread_n saint_n cyrill_n 4._o cyrill_n cyrill_n hieros_n catech._n mystagog_o 4._o come_v not_o therefore_o as_o unto_o simple_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o affirmation_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o although_o sense_n suggest_v the_o contrary_a yet_o let_v faith_n confirm_v thou_o judge_v not_o of_o the_o thing_n by_o taste_n but_o indubitable_o &_o with_o full_a faith_n believe_v that_o thou_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o again_o know_v this_o &_o with_o full_a certitude_n believe_v that_o the_o bread_n see_v be_v not_o bread_n though_o it_o so_o seem_v to_o the_o taste_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o that_o wine_n see_v be_v not_o wine_n though_o taste_n judge_v it_o to_o be_v wine_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n x._o final_o that_o the_o father_n hold_v transubstantiation_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o continuancy_n which_o they_o teach_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n last_o as_o appeareth_z by_o their_o reserve_n of_o the_o same_o for_o reservation_n to_o have_v be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n protestant_n grant_n that_o 39_o that_o habent_fw-la veteris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la exemplum_fw-la fateor_fw-la caluin_n instit._fw-la l._n 9_o c._n 17._o sect_n 39_o the_o sacrament_n be_v of_o some_o reserve_v in_o the_o elder_a day_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o say_v 77._o say_v fulke_o against_o heskin_n saunders_n p._n 77._o m._n fulke_o so_o great_a a_o question_n as_o whether_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v reserve_v and_o chemnitius_n 102._o chemnitius_n chemnit_fw-la in_o exam_n con._n trid._n p._n 2._o p._n 102._o grant_v that_o in_o this_o point_n on_o our_o side_n stand_v antiquitas_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la latè_fw-la patentis_fw-la &_o diu_fw-la propagatae_fw-la and_o whereas_o he_o add_v haec_fw-la tamen_fw-la veritati_fw-la praescribere_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la he_o accuse_v the_o primitive_a church_n &_o oppose_v no_o less_o against_o they_o than_o us._n and_o i_o be_o sure_a your_o majesty_n know_v that_o the_o primitive_a father_n do_v use_v to_o send_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v lawful_o absent_a from_o church_n as_o do_v witness_n s._n justine_n fine_a justine_n justin._n apol._n 2._o fine_a &_o unto_o the_o sick_a as_o innocent_n as_o dionys._n alexand_v ep_v ad_fw-la fab._n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 6._o cap._n 36._o chrysost._n ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la innocent_n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n write_v of_o serapion_n that_o christian_n carry_v the_o same_o to_o their_o private_a house_n to_o take_v in_o the_o morning_n before_o other_o meat_n as_o testify_v tertullian_n gorgon_n tertullian_n tertul._n l._n 2._o ad_fw-la vxorem_fw-la gregor_n nazian_n orat_fw-la de_fw-fr gorgon_n that_o many_o time_n they_o do_v wear_v the_o same_o about_o they_o for_o protection_n as_o satyri_fw-la as_o ambros._n orat_fw-la in_o obit●●_n fratris_fw-la satyri_fw-la satyrus_n brother_n to_o saint_n ambrose_n go_v to_o sea_n carry_v it_o in_o a_o stole_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o he_o be_v save_v in_o shipwreck_n that_o martyr_n have_v the_o same_o frequent_o for_o their_o viaticum_fw-la as_o 2._o as_o simeon_n metaphrast_n aquavitae_fw-la s._n stephani_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o martyris_fw-la cap._n 17._o vsuard_n in_o martyrolog_n guitmund_n de_fw-fr corp_n &_o sanguine_a l._n 2._o tharsilius_fw-la a_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n who_o be_v take_v with_o the_o sacrament_n about_o he_o permit_v himself_o rather_o to_o be_v bruise_v with_o stone_n to_o death_n then_o disclose_v it_o unto_o the_o persecutor_n who_o when_o they_o have_v crown_v thy_o search_a curious_o for_o the_o sacrament_n in_o his_o clothes_n and_o about_o his_o dead_a body_n find_v nothing_o god_n by_o miracle_n keep_v the_o same_o out_o of_o their_o impious_a hand_n saint_n lapsis_fw-la saint_n cyprian_a serm_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la cyprian_n record_v diverse_a miracle_n do_v in_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o our_o saviour_n permanent_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n namely_o of_o a_o woman_n unworthy_o approach_v to_o the_o chest_n where_o the_o same_o be_v keep_v that_o be_v fright_v back_o with_o fire_n that_o thence_o flash_v out_o tanta_fw-la est_fw-la domini_fw-la potentia_fw-la say_v saint_n cyprian_n tanta_fw-la majestas_fw-la and_o so_o full_o be_v they_o persuade_v in_o this_o opinion_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v permanent_o in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o cyrill_n calosyr_n cyrill_n cyrill_n alex._n ep_v ad_fw-la calosyr_n dare_v say_v insaniunt_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la à_fw-la sanctificatione_n cessare_fw-la siquae_fw-la reliquiae_fw-la remanserunt_fw-la eius_fw-la in_o sequentem_fw-la diem_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la mutabitur_fw-la sacrosanctum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la virtus_fw-la benedictionis_fw-la &_o vivificativa_fw-la gratia_fw-la iugis_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la est_fw-la they_o be_v mad_a with_o heretical_a folly_n who_o say_v that_o the_o bless_a sanctification_n of_o the_o sacrament_n cease_v if_o the_o same_o be_v reserve_v until_o the_o next_o day_n for_o thereby_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o change_v but_o the_o grace_n of_o benediction_n &_o vivification_n be_v perpetual_a in_o it_o now_o what_o reason_n can_v the_o father_n have_v thus_o constant_o to_o defend_v this_o continuation_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o they_o believe_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n remain_v demonstrable_a by_o the_o form_n &_o accidence_n thereof_o so_o long_o as_o they_o remain_v entire_a and_o be_v not_o change_v into_o the_o accidence_n of_o some_o other_o substance_n xi_o a_o refutation_n of_o the_o minister_n shift_n to_o elude_v the_o former_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n according_a to_o the_o reference_n of_o the_o precedent_a number_n 1_n no_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o christian_a antiquity_n can_v be_v so_o clear_a &_o evident_a which_o heretical_a obstinacy_n will_v not_o wrest_v against_o the_o truth_n yea_o rack_n till_o they_o rend_v they_o in_o piece_n by_o violent_a interpretation_n as_o say_v s._n ambrose_n ep._n 17._o in_o which_o kind_n be_v the_o minister_n reply_v unto_o these_o express_a &_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n for_o transubstantiation_n as_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o confutation_n which_o here_o ensue_v ii_o transelement_a the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transelementation_n say_v the_o minister_n pag._n 421._o prove_v not_o transubstantiation_n for_o in_o transubstantiation_n the_o matter_n be_v destroy_v &_o the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n remain_v &_o in_o transelementation_n the_o matter_n remain_v &_o the_o essential_a &_o accidental_a form_n be_v alter_v answer_n the_o falsehood_n and_o inanity_n of_o this_o shift_n be_v convince_v by_o these_o four_o argument_n which_o show_v transelementation_n to_o import_v the_o same_o as_o transubstantiation_n the_o first_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n element_n &_o transelementation_n for_o transelementation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n signifyes_n that_o there_o be_v a_o change_n betwixt_o they_o according_a to_o their_o element_n element_n import_v the_o primordiall_a simples_n the_o original_a principle_n the_o substantial_a part_n of_o which_o
a_o thing_n be_v fundamental_o compose_v hence_o fire_n air_n water_n earth_n as_o also_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o alphabet_n be_v term_v element_n because_o both_o be_v primordiall_a simples_n and_o substantial_a part_n the_o one_o of_o mix_a substance_n the_o other_o of_o word_n and_o sentence_n now_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o also_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v corporal_a substance_n the_o primordiall_a simples_n and_o substantial_a principle_n whereof_o their_o nature_n be_v original_o compose_v be_v substantial_a matter_n &_o form_n as_o every_o philosopher_n know_v ergo_fw-la transelementation_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n do_v import_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n according_a to_o their_o element_n that_o be_v matter_n &_o form_n be_v not_o this_o transubstantiation_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v because_o in_o transelementation_n matter_n do_v no_o more_o remain_v then_o in_o transubstantiation_n &_o so_o your_o devise_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o be_v false_a for_o as_o when_o transelementation_n be_v partial_a that_o be_v according_a to_o form_v only_o the_o matter_n remain_v so_o likewise_o in_o transubstantiation_n for_o example_n when_o wood_n be_v turn_v into_o fire_n the_o form_n be_v destroy_v the_o matter_n remain_v as_o wood_n by_o this_o change_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v transelemented_a into_o fire_n because_o it_o be_v change_v into_o fire_n according_a to_o the_o form_n which_o be_v one_o element_n of_o wood_n so_o likewise_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v transubstantiate_v into_o fire_n because_o it_o be_v change_v into_o fire_n according_a to_o the_o form_n which_o be_v one_o part_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o wood_n though_o christian_n do_v not_o use_v so_o to_o speak_v because_o aswell_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o grecian_a church_n as_o the_o word_n transubstantiation_n by_o the_o latin_a be_v consecrate_v to_o signify_v the_o substantial_a change_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v total_a according_a to_o both_o element_n &_o substantial_a part_n three_o i_o thus_o argue_v the_o minister_n grant_v that_o transelementation_n do_v import_v a_o essential_a change_n or_o a_o change_n according_a to_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n but_o this_o can_v be_v according_a to_o the_o essential_a form_n only_o &_o not_o also_o according_a to_o the_o essential_a matter_n of_o bread_n else_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v make_v big_a by_o the_o matter_n of_o bread_n change_v into_o it_o as_o we_o see_v the_o fire_n to_o be_v make_v big_a by_o the_o matter_n of_o wood_n remain_v after_o the_o conversion_n thereof_o into_o fire_n ergo_fw-la see_v the_o minister_n grant_v that_o transelementation_n import_v a_o essential_a change_n he_o must_v if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v ridiculous_o absurd_a consequent_o grant_v that_o this_o change_n be_v to_o tall_a else_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v augment_v by_o the_o material_a addition_n of_o bread_n unto_o it_o four_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o father_n appropriation_n of_o this_o word_n unto_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n for_o do_v not_o transelementation_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n import_v a_o substantial_a change_n but_o only_o a_o accidental_a mystical_a &_o significative_a conversion_n of_o they_o i_o ask_v first_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n be_v transelemented_a into_o christ_n blood_n as_o well_o as_o they_o say_v that_o wine_n be_v transelemented_a into_o his_o blood_n for_o thus_o they_o may_v have_v speak_v of_o baptism_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o eucharist_n have_v they_o be_v of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n which_o be_v that_o water_n be_v mystical_o and_o significative_o make_v christ_n blood_n in_o baptism_n as_o much_o as_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n second_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o our_o body_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v transelemented_a into_o christ_n body_n but_o only_o as_o the_o minister_n cite_v s._n nissen_n orat_fw-la catechist_n c._n 34._o transmutantur_fw-la they_o be_v transmute_v why_o this_o but_o because_o transmutation_n be_v a_o general_n term_n signifyes_n any_o mutation_n whether_o substantial_a or_o accidental_a whereas_o transelementation_n can_v import_v but_o a_o substantial_a change_n final_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o man_n soul_n be_v by_o grace_n &_o charity_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n into_o who_o the_o same_o be_v mystical_o change_v theophilact_n indeed_o cite_v by_o the_o minister_n in_o joan._n c._n 6._o v._n 56._o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o manner_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n as_o he_o may_v no_o less_o true_o have_v say_v in_o a_o manner_n transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n but_o that_o man_n be_v by_o grace_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n they_o never_o say_v which_o be_v manifest_a sign_n that_o the_o father_n understand_v by_o transelementation_n according_a to_o the_o proper_a &_o natural_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n a_o substantial_a conversion_n &_o not_o only_o a_o accidental_a much_o less_o a_o mere_a mystical_a change_n iii_o s._n cyrill_n say_v the_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n convert_v bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o own_o flesh_n understand_v not_o popish_a transubstantiation_n but_o mystical_a &_o sacramental_a conversion_n to_o wit_n conversion_n of_o signification_n use_n &_o operation_n for_o he_o speak_v of_o bread_n &_o wine_n according_a to_o their_o whole_a nature_n contain_v substance_n &_o accident_n but_o the_o accident_n be_v only_o mystical_o convert_v into_o christ_n his_o body_n answer_n this_o mist_n which_o the_o minister_n will_v cast_v upon_o this_o matter_n by_o the_o term_n of_o mystical_a conversion_n serve_v only_o to_o catch_v woodcock_n for_o every_o man_n of_o judgement_n may_v present_o see_v that_o this_o sense_n can_v stand_v with_o the_o word_n of_o s._n cyrill_n for_o s._n cyrill_n say_v that_o do_v man_n see_v and_o feel_v what_o be_v inward_o do_v in_o consecrate_a bread_n &_o wine_n man_n shall_v find_v horror_n to_o feed_v thereon_o because_o they_o shall_v see_v and_o feel_v that_o they_o eat_v and_o drink_v flesh_n &_o blood_n hence_o that_o this_o may_v not_o be_v perceave_v he_o say_v the_o conversion_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v do_v inward_o by_o christ_n penetrative_a power_n convert_n they_o into_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o do_v man_n see_v what_o be_v inward_o do_v in_o bread_n &_o wine_n by_o the_o protestant_n significative_a conversion_n they_o will_v feel_v no_o horror_n for_o in_o their_o tenet_n no_o change_n at_o all_o be_v make_v inward_o in_o bread_n but_o the_o whole_a outward_a substance_n be_v assume_v as_o a_o instrument_n to_o sanctify_v the_o soul_n if_o a_o christian_a shall_v see_v this_o conversion_n of_o use_n &_o operation_n shall_v he_o see_v i_o say_v that_o bread_n be_v elevate_v to_o produce_v sanctify_v grace_n in_o his_o soul_n why_o shall_v he_o feel_v horror_n to_o feed_v thereon_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o only_a wilfulness_n against_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n but_o also_o folly_n to_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o s._n cyrill_n of_o mere_a mystical_a &_o significative_a change_n four_o unto_o this_o testimony_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n the_o minister_n repli_v in_o these_o word_n the_o father_n say_v not_o that_o nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n be_v leave_v but_o the_o clean_a the_o contrary_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n go_v away_o &_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v false_o translate_v for_o they_o be_v not_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o substance_n but_o be_v coabsume_v with_o the_o substance_n also_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o consume_v by_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o many_o schoolman_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o external_a element_n pass_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o receiver_n &_o be_v consume_v or_o unite_v to_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o receiver_n answer_n this_o your_o reply_n touch_v two_o point_n first_o the_o translation_n second_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n i_o will_v discover_v your_o vanity_n about_o both_o as_o concern_v the_o first_o you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o wrangler_n and_o give_v unto_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d condemn_v by_o s._n paul_n labour_v to_o make_v those_o say_n to_o be_v dissonant_n and_o contrary_n betwixt_o which_o there_o be_v not_o any_o difference_n in_o respect_n of_o sense_n what_o disagreement_n in_o respect_n of_o sense_n be_v there_o between_o these_o two_o sentence_n which_o you_o say_v be_v contrary_a when_o wax_n be_v put_v into_o the_o fire_n nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n thereof_o be_v
any_o doctrine_n prejudicial_a unto_o prince_n be_v singular_a unto_o jesuit_n that_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o jesuit_n and_o by_o jesuit_n only_o why_o do_v you_o not_o name_v these_o opinion_n what_o they_o be_v why_o do_v you_o dwell_v upon_o generalyty_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o cozen_a companion_n dolosus_fw-la versatur_fw-la in_o generalibus_fw-la why_o but_o because_o you_o know_v that_o descend_v unto_o particular_n your_o falsehood_n will_v present_o be_v display_v hence_o you_o talk_v in_o the_o air_n and_o in_o effect_n thus_o you_o discourse_n i_o know_v there_o be_v certain_a opinion_n maintain_v singular_o by_o jesuit_n against_o royal_a sovereignty_n what_o they_o be_v i_o do_v not_o know_v for_o they_o be_v write_v in_o book_n as_o invisible_a as_o be_v our_o church_n before_o luther_n no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o the_o globe_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v read_v but_o by_o the_o light_n thereof_o the_o opinion_n for_o which_o some_o catholic_n at_o who_o you_o glance_v as_o appear_v by_o your_o margin_n have_v tax_v jesuit_n of_o singularity_n be_v that_o god_n have_v assure_v prescience_n of_o thing_n contingent_a not_o only_o of_o which_o shall_v in_o time_n actual_o happen_v but_o also_o of_o what_o upon_o supposition_n which_o never_o be_v may_v have_v be_v for_o example_n god_n know_v certain_o whether_o these_o conditional_a proposition_n be_v true_a or_o false_a if_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o have_v never_o see_v anne_n bullen_n england_n have_v be_v catholic_a at_o this_o day_n if_o queen_n mary_n of_o scotland_n have_v flee_v into_o france_n when_o she_o come_v into_o england_n she_o have_v recover_v her_o kingdom_n against_o the_o rebel_n if_o the_o miracle_n christ_n do_v in_o jewry_n have_v be_v do_v in_o tyrus_n and_o sidon_n those_o city_n will_v have_v do_v penance_n this_o doctrine_n some_o divines_n mislike_v and_o say_v the_o same_o be_v first_o invent_v by_o jesuit_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a then_o have_v protestant_n do_v jesuit_n wrong_n that_o relate_v this_o very_a doctrine_n of_o god_n conditional_a prescience_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o reform_a gospel_n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 3._o c._n 23._o pag._n 122._o but_o i_o pray_v you_o what_o be_v this_o to_o your_o scope_n the_o doctrine_n that_o god_n know_v the_o state_n of_o thing_n conditional_o contingent_a what_o make_v it_o against_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o prince_n do_v you_o not_o see_v you_o be_v ridiculous_a second_o if_o jesuit_n be_v not_o singular_a in_o their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o depression_n of_o king_n wherefore_o be_v jesuit_n suarez_n his_o book_n contra_fw-la sectam_fw-la anglicanam_fw-la condemn_v at_o paris_n in_o france_n and_o burn_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o hangman_n answer_n i_o likewise_o demand_v of_o you_o if_o jesuit_n suarez_n his_o book_n be_v prejudicial_a to_o princely_a authority_n why_o be_v the_o same_o allow_v in_o all_o other_o catholic_a kingdom_n so_o as_o the_o king_n by_o his_o solicitation_n can_v not_o get_v the_o same_o to_o be_v condemn_v do_v not_o other_o kingdom_n know_v the_o catholic_a extent_n of_o royal_a authority_n zealous_o mantain_v the_o sovereignty_n thereof_o how_o can_v that_o doctrine_n be_v singular_a of_o jesuit_n unto_o which_o bishop_n secular_a doctor_n and_o religious_a of_o other_o order_n have_v set_v their_o name_n by_o way_n of_o approbation_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o treatise_n and_o if_o your_o argument_n be_v good_a jesuit_n suarez_n his_o book_n be_v in_o france_n burn_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o hangman_n ergo_fw-la the_o order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n hold_v doctrine_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o prince_n sure_o this_o argument_n be_v strong_a and_o unanswerable_a minister_n paraeus_n his_o book_n be_v in_o london_n public_o burn_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o hangman_n by_o order_n of_o the_o king_n wherein_o no_o papist_n have_v his_o hand_n ergo_fw-la the_o protestant_a ministry_n hold_v doctrine_n pernicious_a unto_o the_o state_n of_o prince_n the_o three_o argument_n wherefore_o be_v jesuit_n banish_v out_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o venetian_n profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n if_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o no_o singularity_n about_o the_o matter_n of_o regal_a and_o civil_a authority_n answer_n why_o be_v jesuit_n permit_v desire_v and_o seek_v for_o by_o all_o other_o catholic_n kingdom_n and_o state_n of_o the_o world_n if_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o singularity_n against_o regal_a and_o civil_a authority_n shall_v one_o dispute_v in_o this_o sort_n wherefore_o be_v chrysostome_n socrat._v l._n 6._o c._n 26._o &_o alij_fw-la banish_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a city_n of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o catholic_a emperor_n arcadius_n at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o catholic_a empress_n in_o a_o council_n of_o catholic_a bishop_n but_o that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o treason_n against_o royal_a authority_n what_o will_v a_o learned_a answerer_n say_v he_o will_v laugh_v at_o the_o disputant_n folly_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o king_n and_o state_n may_v be_v put_v into_o displeasure_n and_o passion_n against_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n &_o so_o banish_v they_o their_o dominion_n not_o only_o for_o singularity_n against_o civil_a authority_n but_o for_o other_o reason_n as_o for_o their_o over_o zealous_a inveigh_v against_o vicious_a life_n &_o constant_a cross_n of_o their_o disordinate_a humour_n i_o can_v bring_v many_o example_n of_o just_a &_o holy_a man_n banish_v by_o catholic_n yea_o by_o pious_a and_o godly_a king_n and_o state_n upon_o mistake_n suspicion_n false_a information_n s._n athanasius_n that_o mirror_n of_o sanctity_n &_o learning_n unto_o who_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v more_o behold_v then_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o then_o live_v beside_o be_v he_o not_o for_o suspicion_n about_o temporal_a affair_n banish_v by_o constantine_n the_o great_a the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n the_o pattern_n of_o religious_a prince_n ruffin_n l._n 1._o c._n 17._o god_n permit_v such_o trial_n to_o fall_v on_o his_o servant_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o patience_n until_o time_n discover_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v sufficient_o clear_v if_o man_n still_o remain_v obdurate_a his_o justice_n will_v not_o sleep_v the_o four_o argument_n mariana_n the_o jesuit_n work_n the_o institutione_n principis_fw-la wherein_o he_o maintain_v regicide_n be_v extant_a in_o many_o hand_n answer_n the_o example_n of_o mariana_n prove_v not_o that_o jesuit_n hold_v singular_a opinion_n against_o other_o but_o only_o that_o mariana_n be_v singular_a against_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o order_n which_o through_o the_o oversight_n of_o revisor_n pass_v to_o the_o print_n a_o thing_n that_o may_v sometime_o happen_v which_o to_o prevent_v the_o general_n of_o the_o jesuit_n give_v that_o severe_a order_n about_o review_v of_o book_n in_o that_o kind_n which_o the_o jesuit_n have_v set_v down_o in_o his_o answer_n that_o jesuit_n mariana_n be_v singular_a against_o the_o rest_n appear_v in_o that_o he_o be_v confute_v by_o name_n of_o some_o of_o his_o own_o order_n for_o this_o doctrine_n even_o before_o the_o censure_n of_o paris_n see_v the_o letter_n of_o cotton_n and_o if_o you_o will_v allow_v against_o the_o common_a proverb_n one_o swallow_n make_v not_o a_o summer_n that_o the_o error_n of_o one_o be_v sufficient_a be_v condemn_v a_o whole_a society_n than_o the_o minister_n paraeus_n his_o work_n wherein_o he_o mantayne_v deposition_n and_o regicide_n must_v make_v all_o minister_n guilty_a special_o see_v not_o one_o of_o they_o write_v against_o paraeus_n his_o book_n before_o the_o same_o be_v public_o burn_v in_o london_n nor_o be_v mariana_n his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o you_o often_o ignorant_o suppose_v but_o of_o the_o commonwealth_n power_n against_o tyrant_n a_o doctrine_n which_o jesuit_n condemn_v but_o protestant_n common_o follow_v i_o can_v name_v twenty_o of_o their_o author_n that_o peremptory_o affirm_v what_o mariana_n do_v only_o doubt_o propose_v yea_o much_o more_o for_o do_v not_o protestant_n teach_v see_v the_o book_n of_o dangerous_a position_n lib._n 1._o c._n 4._o &_o l._n 2._o c._n 1._o that_o judge_n ought_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n so_o summon_v prince_n before_o they_o for_o their_o crime_n and_o to_o proceed_v against_o they_o as_o against_o all_o other_o offender_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v wicked_a king_n and_o tyrant_n that_o god_n to_o the_o people_n have_v give_v the_o sword_n from_o which_o no_o person_n king_n queen_n emperor_n be_v exempt_a be_v a_o idolater_n he_o must_v die_v the_o death_n a_o hundred_o the_o like_a theorem_n of_o your_o gospel_n and_o gospeler_n can_v i_o allege_v to_o stop_v your_o mouth_n the_o opinion_n which_o mariana_n do_v doubtful_o insinuate_v be_v far_o short_a of_o
prove_v that_o jesuit_n hold_v singular_a opinion_n to_o enlarge_v the_o pope_n power_n you_o say_v pag._n 573._o that_o jesuit_n more_o they_o other_o romist_n be_v oblige_v by_o special_a vow_n to_o maintain_v papal_a dignity_n and_o pag._n 579._o if_o his_o holiness_n send_v another_o wind_n you_o which_o have_v vow_v strict_a obedience_n unto_o the_o pope_n must_v turn_v your_o sail_n your_o vote_n and_o prayer_n must_v be_v bind_v to_o execute_v the_o pope_n pleasure_n in_o kill_v the_o king_n and_o again_o pag._n 577._o what_o safety_n and_o security_n can_v prince_n enjoy_v by_o rely_v upon_o such_o servant_n which_o stand_v sentinel_n upon_o a_o hour_n warning_n to_o follow_v their_o great_a master_n if_o your_o master_n hand_n cast_v cross_a instead_o of_o pile_n what_o shall_v we_o expect_v from_o such_o gamester_n quibus_fw-la ludus_fw-la sunt_fw-la capita_n &_o diademata_fw-la regum_fw-la this_o be_v your_o cavil_v utter_v with_o all_o possible_a gall_n which_o yet_o be_v clear_v by_o the_o word_n in_o your_o margin_n out_o of_o the_o bull_n of_o confirmation_n of_o the_o institute_n of_o the_o jesuit_n by_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o you_o cite_v they_o in_o latin_a as_o against_o jesuit_n to_o delude_v fool_n but_o you_o english_a they_o not_o as_o know_v they_o tend_v to_o the_o credit_n of_o jesuit_n &_o the_o discovery_n of_o your_o slander_n these_o they_o be_v we_o ●udge_v i●_n expedient_a for_o the_o great_a devotion_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a &_o more_o full_a abnegation_n of_o our_o own_o self_n will_n and_o pleasure_n that_o the_o profess_a of_o this_o society_n beside_o the_o common_a band_n of_o three_o vow_n be_v further_o tie_v by_o special_a vow_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o roman_a bishop_n for_o the_o time_n be_v shall_v command_v pertinent_a unto_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o propagation_n of_o the_o faith_n they_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o execute_v the_o same_o present_o without_o tergiversation_n and_o excuse_n whether_o they_o shall_v be_v send_v unto_o turk_n or_o unto_o infidel_n even_o unto_o those_o which_o be_v common_o call_v the_o indies_n or_o unto_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_o these_o be_v the_o word_n contain_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o jesuit_n special_a vow_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o their_o vow_n be_v not_o to_o enlarge_v papal_a power_n but_o to_o propagate_v the_o christian_a name_n to_o find_v out_o not_o new_a opinion_n to_o put_v man_n under_o the_o pope_n but_o new_a nation_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o to_o exalt_v they_o to_o heaven_n by_o teach_v they_o the_o save_a truth_n nor_o be_v jesuit_n bound_n by_o this_o vow_n to_o obey_v the_o pope_n absolute_o in_o all_o thing_n but_o in_o thing_n that_o be_v according_a to_o their_o institute_n which_o be_v to_o follow_v as_o near_o as_o by_o divine_a grace_n they_o may_v the_o life_n of_o jesus_n if_o the_o pope_n command_v they_o they_o must_v obey_v in_o thing_n that_o pertain_v unto_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n not_o in_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o the_o destruction_n of_o body_n if_o the_o pope_n bid_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o go_v beg_v in_o apostolical_a manner_n not_o fight_v in_o military_a sort_n to_o carry_v the_o cross_n not_o to_o brandish_v the_o sword_n to_o sound_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n not_o the_o trumpet_n of_o war_n to_o give_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o truth_n their_o own_o blood_n not_o to_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o other_o to_o help_v man_n unto_o eternal_a crown_n not_o to_o take_v temporal_a crown_n from_o any_o hence_o you_o may_v see_v jesuit_n stand_v indeed_o sentinel_n at_o a_o hour_n warning_n to_o be_v send_v unto_o jew_n turk_n infidel_n indian_n cannibal_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o in_o preach_v thereof_o to_o expose_v their_o life_n to_o daily_a danger_n of_o death_n destitute_a of_o all_o comfort_n that_o the_o world_n can_v afford_v in_o execution_n whereof_o they_o have_v by_o their_o labour_n bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o blissful_a life_n and_o to_o the_o hope_n of_o everlasting_a crown_n many_o prince_n &_o kingdom_n in_o the_o indies_n whereas_o your_o gospel_n the_o mean_a while_o do_v nothing_o but_o tumultuate_v raise_v sedition_n murder_n and_o put_v king_n from_o their_o throne_n in_o europe_n in_o so_o much_o as_o beza_n epist._n theol._n 63._o say_v what_o church_n shall_v we_o now_o have_v have_v we_o not_o erect_v they_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n against_o the_o will_n of_o king_n whence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o jesuit_n vow_v to_o be_v ready_a at_o a_o hour_n warning_n to_o go_v unto_o any_o country_n of_o infidel_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o against_o the_o safety_n and_o security_n of_o king_n if_o some_o minister_n in_o england_n can_v so_o eloyne_v themselves_o from_o all_o affection_n of_o this_o life_n as_o to_o bind_v themselves_o by_o vow_n unto_o their_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n to_o be_v ready_a at_o a_o hour_n warning_n to_o go_v when_o he_o send_v they_o without_o tergiversation_n or_o excuse_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n whether_o to_o jew_n turk_n infidel_n indian_n or_o cannibal_n as_o he_o shall_v think_v most_o 〈◊〉_d how_o this_o vow_n will_v endanger_v the_o king_n security_n i_o do_v not_o see_v 〈…〉_o will_v indeed_o trouble_v their_o wife_n &_o so_o it_o be_v a_o perfection_n not_o to_o 〈…〉_o for_o among_o wive_n gospeler_n yea_o they_o can_v endure_v the_o sight_n thereof_o more_o than_o bat_n the_o candle_n which_o they_o strive_v to_o put_v out_o with_o their_o impure_a wing_n as_o these_o man_n labour_v to_o disgrace_v such_o glorious_a institutes_n their_o wive_v gospel_n can_v aspire_v unto_o with_o the_o filth_n of_o all_o slanderous_a report_n the_o title_n of_o gamester_n quibus_fw-la ludus_fw-la sunt_fw-la capita_n &_o diademata_fw-la regum_fw-la that_o play_n and_o sport_n at_o the_o decrow_a and_o behead_v of_o king_n which_o for_o a_o farewell_n you_o will_v shake_v from_o yourselves_o upon_o jesuit_n will_v not_o so_o easy_o go_v from_o you_o it_o be_v proprium_fw-la quarto_fw-la modo_fw-la to_o you_o the_o note_n and_o ensign_n of_o your_o gospel_n the_o distinctive_a mark_n of_o your_o profession_n and_o will_v be_v so_o long_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v mention_n thereof_o for_o your_o game_n feast_v and_o triumph_v at_o the_o behead_v of_o the_o lord_n anoint_v be_v set_v upon_o authentical_a record_n in_o your_o own_o chronicle_n john_n stow._n pag._n 1240._o will_v you_o read_v it_o anno_fw-la reg._n 29._o the_o 6._o of_o december_n the_o lord_n mayor_n of_o london_n assist_v with_o diverse_a earl_n baron_n the_o alderman_n of_o london_n in_o scarlet_a the_o principal_a officer_n of_o the_o city_n the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o best_a account_n in_o and_o about_o the_o city_n with_o the_o number_n of_o 80._o of_o the_o most_o grave_a and_o worshipfull_a citizen_n in_o coat_n of_o velvet_n and_o chain_n of_o gold_n all_o on_o horseback_n in_o most_o solemn_a &_o stately_a manner_n by_o the_o sound_n of_o four_o trumpet_n about_o ten_o of_o the_o clock_n in_o the_o before_o noon_n make_v open_a and_o public_a proclamation_n of_o the_o sentence_n give_v for_o the_o behead_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o scot_n to_o the_o great_a and_o wonderful_a rejoice_v of_o the_o people_n of_o all_z sort_n as_o manifest_o appear_v by_o ring_v of_o bell_n make_v of_o bonfire_n and_o sing_v of_o psalm_n in_o every_o street_n and_o lane_n of_o the_o city_n never_o since_o christianity_n begin_v be_v there_o sect_n or_o nation_n of_o man_n under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a that_o do_v iuridical_o behead_v a_o christian_a anoint_v king_n feast_v sing_a and_o dance_v about_o bonefyre_n for_o joy_n in_o that_o respect_n but_o only_o your_o gospel_n so_o as_o man_n hear_v the_o title_n of_o gamester_n quibus_fw-la ludus_fw-la sunt_fw-la capita_n &_o diademata_fw-la regum_fw-la can_v they_o understand_v any_o other_o profession_n but_o you_o thus_o i_o have_v more_o large_o encounter_v with_o your_o slander_n that_o you_o may_v see_v you_o gain_v nothing_o by_o your_o bitter_a excursion_n into_o odious_a matter_n the_o mist_n of_o your_o cavil_n be_v easy_o disperse_v by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n your_o calumniation_n against_o catholic_n as_o ball_n cast_v against_o a_o wall_n of_o brass_n for_o murus_fw-la aheneus_fw-la esto_fw-la nil_fw-la conscire_fw-la sibi_fw-la return_v with_o a_o strong_a rebound_n of_o confusion_n upon_o your_o own_o face_n the_o conclusion_n have_v perform_v your_o majesties_n will_n and_o pleasure_n in_o seek_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n about_o the_o nine_o principal_a point_n that_o withhold_v your_o royal_a assent_n from_o join_v unto_o the_o roman_a church_n my_o poor_a endeavour_n prostrate_v at_o your_o majesties_n foot_n to_o receive_v their_o doom_n humble_o beseech_v this_o favour_n that_o your_o charity_n &_o desire_n of_o
ad_fw-la come_v philip._n &_o in_o 1._o ad_fw-la corinth_n this_o may_v convince_v our_o minister_n that_o his_o allegation_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n and_o that_o judgement_n of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o a_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o report_n of_o zealous_a complaint_n but_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o sight_n rule_v by_o unpartial_a search_n by_o which_o rule_n one_o may_v find_v in_o the_o catholic_a clergy_n thousand_o and_o thousand_o that_o show_v admirable_a charity_n special_o in_o convert_n infidel_n yea_o that_o win_v the_o glorious_a crown_n of_o angelical_a chastity_n for_o which_o they_o will_v never_o have_v strive_v have_v not_o the_o church_n bind_v they_o thereunto_o so_o that_o if_o human_a infirmity_n by_o occasion_n of_o this_o law_n make_v some_o man_n impure_a that_o otherwise_o perchance_o in_o marriage_n will_v have_v be_v chaste_a so_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o the_o same_o occasion_n work_v in_o innumerable_a angelical_a saint_n who_o have_v never_o be_v such_o but_o for_o the_o church_n exaction_n and_o this_o harvest_n make_v full_a recompense_n for_o that_o loss_n special_o see_v also_o many_o of_o such_o delinquent_n be_v not_o lose_v but_o save_v by_o penance_n yea_o become_v more_o excellent_a saint_n than_o they_o have_v be_v have_v they_o never_o fall_v chastity_n obedience_n charity_n in_o undergo_n labour_v for_o the_o help_n of_o soul_n fortitude_n in_o suffer_v of_o heroical_a martyrdom_n zeal_n and_o patience_n in_o the_o rough_a and_o rigorous_a treaty_n of_o their_o body_n by_o miraculous_a fast_n &_o another_o austeritye_n this_o sanctity_n shine_v not_o in_o all_o child_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o she_o more_o eminent_a preacher_n &_o professor_n which_o kind_n of_o sanctity_n together_o with_o miracle_n if_o the_o church_n do_v want_v she_o can_v not_o be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n of_o the_o truth_n unto_o infidel_n who_o common_o never_o begin_v to_o affect_v &_o admire_v christianity_n but_o upon_o the_o sight_n of_o such_o wonder_n of_o sanctity_n &_o other_o extraordinary_a work_n holy_a for_o doctrine_n in_o regard_n her_o tradition_n be_v divine_a and_o holy_a without_o any_o mixture_n of_o error_n for_o if_o the_o church_n can_v deliver_v by_o consent_n of_o ancestor_n together_o with_o truth_n some_o error_n her_o tradition_n even_o about_o truth_n be_v questionable_a &_o can_v not_o be_v believe_v upon_o the_o warrant_n of_o her_o tradition_n for_o who_o can_v without_o danger_n and_o secure_o feed_v on_o that_o dish_n that_o may_v aswell_o contain_v poison_n as_o wholesome_a sustenance_n and_o whereas_o some_o protestant_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o fundamental_a point_n but_o only_o in_o thing_n of_o less_o moment_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o in_o perpetual_a tradition_n she_o can_v err_v at_o all_o if_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v a_o small_a thing_n as_o receyve_v from_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v false_a one_o may_v call_v into_o question_n her_o tradition_n of_o moment_n for_o like_a as_o if_o we_o admit_v in_o the_o scripture_n error_n in_o small_a matter_n we_o can_v be_v sure_a of_o its_o infallibility_n in_o substantial_a matter_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o grant_v tradition_n perpetual_a to_o be_v false_a in_o thing_n of_o less_o importance_n we_o have_v no_o solid_a ground_n to_o defend_v her_o tradition_n as_o assure_v in_o other_o of_o moment_n wherefore_o as_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v god_n write_v word_n be_v false_a in_o some_o less_o matter_n as_o when_o it_o say_v s._n paul_n leave_v his_o cloak_n at_o troas_n err_v fundamental_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o consequence_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o doubt_v of_o every_o thing_n in_o scripture_n even_o so_o he_o that_o grant_v that_o some_o part_n of_o tradition_n or_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a may_v be_v false_a err_v substantial_o because_o he_o give_v cause_n to_o doubt_v of_o any_o tradition_n which_o yet_o as_o i_o have_v show_v be_v the_o prime_n and_o originalll_v ground_v of_o faith_n more_o tradition_n more_o the_o minister_n here_o rayl_v large_o &_o lusty_o term_v this_o assertion_n impudent_a antichristian_a profane_a bastardly_a etc._n etc._n yet_o the_o assertion_n be_v evident_a truth_n &_o his_o reason_n against_o it_o be_v of_o no_o force_n for_o they_o go_v not_o against_o the_o assertion_n but_o prove_v another_o thing_n to_o wit_n the_o excellency_n of_o scripture_n which_o none_o deny_v for_o tradition_n &_o scripture_n according_a to_o different_a comparison_n be_v equal_a &_o superior_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o compare_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o certainty_n of_o truth_n they_o be_v equal_a as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n define_v sess_v 4._o both_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o one_o write_a the_o other_o unwritten_a and_o so_o both_o infinite_o certain_a compare_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o depth_n sublimity_n and_o variety_n of_o doctrine_n the_o scripture_n be_v far_o superior_a unto_o tradition_n tradition_n be_v plain_a and_o easy_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o common_a capital_a and_o practical_a article_n of_o christianity_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o high_a &_o hide_a sense_n and_o furnish_v with_o great_a variety_n of_o example_n discourse_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o erudition_n aug._n epist._n 3._o compare_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o priority_n and_o evidence_n of_o be_v the_o apostle_n the_o scripture_n be_v posteriour_a unto_o tradition_n in_o time_n and_o knowledge_n and_o can_v be_v prove_v direct_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n &_o therefore_o god_n but_o by_o tradition_n as_o sometime_o not_o only_a father_n but_o even_a protestant_n afffirme_v as_o philosophy_n be_v more_o perfect_a than_o logic_n and_o rhetoric_n than_o grammar_n in_o respect_n of_o high_a &_o excellent_a knowledge_n yet_o logic_n be_v more_o prime_a original_a fundamental_a then_o philosophy_n grammar_n than_o rhetoric_n without_o the_o rule_n and_o principle_n whereof_o they_o can_v be_v learn_v even_o so_o tradition_n be_v more_o prime_a and_o original_a than_o scripture_n though_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o depth_n and_o sublimity_n of_o discourse_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o tradition_n fundamental_a than_o the_o very_a scripture_n which_o be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v apostolical_a but_o by_o tradition_n whereas_o a_o perpetual_a tradition_n be_v know_v to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o its_o own_o light_n for_o what_o more_o evident_a they_o that_o that_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v deliver_v as_o apostolical_a by_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n consent_v therein_o the_o propertye_n of_o the_o church_n prove_v by_o matth._n 28.20_o §._o 4._o all_o this_o may_v be_v clear_o prove_v to_o omit_v other_o pregnant_a testimony_n by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o last_o of_o s._n matthew_n go_v into_o the_o world_n teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o keep_v all_o that_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n a_o aright_o a_o the_o minister_n pag._n 195._o lin_v 4._o say_v that_o this_o promise_n be_v conditional_a in_o respect_v of_o pastor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n will_v assist_v they_o conditional_o when_o they_o teach_v and_o baptize_v as_o he_o have_v command_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v so_o still_o teach_v he_o do_v not_o promise_n p._n 24._o lin_v 28._o this_o exposition_n be_v false_a first_o because_o our_o saviour_n here_o promise_v his_o presence_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o baptize_v and_o teach_v until_o the_o world_n end_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o form_n of_o speech_n and_o individual_a breath_n so_o that_o the_o promise_n can_v be_v conditional_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o successor_n except_o it_o be_v also_o conditional_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o promise_n be_v absolute_a as_o the_o minister_n grant_v pag._n 94._o lin_v 23._o therefore_o it_o be_v also_o absolute_a in_o respect_n of_o their_o successor_n not_o that_o this_o or_o that_o pastor_n may_v not_o be_v deceive_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o deliver_v by_o joint_a consent_n any_o falsehood_n as_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n second_o if_o the_o promise_n be_v conditional_a than_o the_o sense_n be_v this_o i_o will_v always_o assist_v you_o to_o teach_v &_o christen_v aright_o when_o you_o teach_v &_o christen_v according_a to_o my_o commandment_n as_o the_o minister_n expound_v pag._n 94._o lin_v 22._o but_o this_o sense_n be_v idle_a and_o just_a nothing_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v behold_v i_o will_v assist_v you_o to_o teach_v aright_o when_o you_o teach_v aright_o for_o what_o be_v to_o teach_v christian_a religion_n aright_o but_o to_o
can_v not_o have_v more_o fond_o sense_v they_o for_o his_o majesty_n speak_v of_o prayer_n and_o deny_v merit_n unto_o the_o repeat_n of_o prayer_n what_o according_a to_o sense_n can_v he_o mean_v but_o the_o merit_n proper_a of_o prayer_n which_o be_v to_o impetrate_v or_o obtain_v and_o so_o the_o jesuit_n prove_v the_o special_a merit_n of_o impetration_n have_v prove_v what_o his_o majesty_n question_v as_o for_o yourself_o see_v you_o deny_v not_o that_o unto_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n special_a merit_n of_o impetration_n be_v affix_v i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o you_o yield_v the_o very_a doctrine_n his_o majesty_n dislike_v to_o wit_n that_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n in_o a_o fix_a number_n have_v special_a force_n and_o efficacy_n to_o impetrate_v certain_a number_n for_o the_o cause_n before_o mention_v destitute_a of_o the_o example_n of_o saint_n that_o live_v in_o the_o best_a age_n of_o the_o church_n palladius_n in_o his_o history_n cap._n 14._o &_o 25._o set_v down_o some_o example_n of_o saint_n pray_v in_o this_o kind_n yea_o the_o century-writer_n cent._n 4._o col_fw-fr 1329._o and_o osiander_n acknowledge_v the_o example_n of_o saint_n paul_n a_o most_o holy_a monk_n live_v in_o the_o four_o age_n after_o christ_n that_o in_o dies_fw-la singulos_fw-la trecentas_fw-la orationes_fw-la deo_fw-la velut_fw-la tributum_fw-la reddidit_fw-la ac_fw-la ne_fw-la per_fw-la imprudentiam_fw-la in_o numero_fw-la erraret_fw-la trecentis_fw-la lapillis_fw-la in_o sinum_fw-la coniectis_fw-la ad_fw-la singulas_fw-la preces_fw-la singulos_fw-la eiecit_fw-la lapillos_fw-la consumptis_fw-la igitur_fw-la lapillis_fw-la constabat_fw-la sibi_fw-la orationes_fw-la lapillis_fw-la numero_fw-la pares_fw-la abs_fw-la se_fw-la expletas_fw-la esse_fw-la which_o example_n of_o so_o great_a a_o saint_n so_o know_v and_o notorious_a it_o notorious_a the_o minister_n answer_v that_o singular_a example_n be_v no_o rule_n for_o ammonius_n be_v solicit_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n cut_v of_o his_o own_o ear_n &_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o imitable_a herein_o so_o neither_o be_v s._n paul_n example_n in_o say_v prayer_n upon_o bead_n to_o be_v follow_v i_o answer_v some_o thing_n be_v such_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n as_o they_o can_v be_v do_v lawful_o and_o with_o out_o sin_n but_o by_o special_a revelation_n as_o the_o kill_n &_o maym_v himself_o in_o which_o kind_a example_n in_o scripture_n or_o else_o where_o relate_v be_v admirable_a not_o imitable_a but_o when_o the_o thing_n use_v by_o some_o singular_a saint_n be_v not_o against_o any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n but_o a_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v do_v without_o special_a revelation_n the_o same_o be_v imitable_a by_o all_o other_o in_o due_a circumstance_n now_o what_o law_n divine_a or_o human_a forbid_v a_o man_n to_o say_v three_o hundred_o prayer_n a_o day_n one_o hundred_o to_o each_o of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n or_o what_o law_n do_v prohibit_v he_o to_o use_v 300._o little_a stone_n or_o bead_n in_o number_v they_o for_o help_v of_o memory_n or_o why_o may_v we_o not_o help_v our_o memory_n in_o number_v our_o devotion_n by_o calculation_n of_o bead_n if_o s._n paul_n example_n be_v pious_a and_o laudable_a if_o to_o say_v prayer_n in_o a_o certain_a number_n upon_o bead_n be_v intrinsical_o evil_a it_o can_v be_v do_v pious_o by_o the_o singular_a instinct_n of_o god_n spirit_n see_v god_n can_v never_o inspire_v man_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v essential_o evil_a if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o itself_o essential_o evil_a why_o shall_v protestant_n forbid_v man_n to_o use_v such_o help_n of_o our_o devotion_n except_o they_o can_v show_v a_o express_a positive_a divine_a law_n in_o scripture_n against_o it_o and_o never_o censure_v by_o any_o father_n may_v more_o than_o abundant_o suffice_v for_o satisfaction_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o no_o more_o moment_n than_o this_o for_o we_o be_v not_o curious_a in_o this_o point_n nor_o do_v require_v of_o any_o man_n that_o he_o say_v his_o prayer_n in_o a_o certain_a number_n so_o that_o he_o may_v not_o say_v more_o or_o less_o as_o his_o devotion_n serve_v he_o the_o sixth_z point_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n your_o excellent_a majesty_n submit_v your_o judgement_n to_o god_n express_a word_n do_v firm_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o most_o venerable_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o doctrine_n do_v natural_o and_o necessary_o infer_v whatsoever_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o presence_n to_o declare_v this_o and_o together_o answer_v a_o objection_n much_o urge_v by_o some_o protestant_n that_o they_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o be_v not_o bind_v by_o this_o to_o believe_v the_o manner_n that_o not_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n we_o must_v note_v that_o man_n be_v bind_v firm_o to_o believe_v the_o manner_n of_o a_o mystery_n reveal_v when_o the_o same_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n thereof_o so_o that_o reject_v the_o manner_n we_o reject_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n this_o be_v evident_a and_o may_v be_v declare_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v so_o unite_v that_o god_n be_v true_o man_n &_o man_n very_o god_n the_o manner_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v ineffable_a and_o incomprehensible_a yet_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v three_o thing_n concern_v it_o which_o if_o we_o deny_v we_o deny_v the_o mystery_n in_o substance_n howsoever_o we_o may_v retain_v the_o same_o in_o word_n first_o that_o this_o union_n be_v not_o only_o metaphorical_a 4._o metaphorical_a non_fw-la affectualis_fw-la unitas_fw-la sed_fw-la secundum_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la synodus_fw-la 5._o generalis_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la constantinop_n 2._o can._n 4._o by_o affection_n as_o two_o person_n that_o be_v great_a friend_n may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v all_o one_o but_o also_o true_a and_o real_a second_o real_a union_n of_o nature_n be_v 5._o be_v qui_fw-la non_fw-la confitetur_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la substantialiter_fw-la vniri_fw-la carni_fw-la anathema_n sit_v synod_n chal._n act_n 5._o synod_n quinta_fw-la general_n can_v 5._o substantial_a and_o not_o accidental_a so_o that_o thereby_o the_o nature_n be_v not_o only_o accidental_o perfect_v by_o receive_v excellent_a participation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n power_n wisdom_n and_o majesty_n but_o also_o substantial_o the_o very_a fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v corporal_o and_o substantial_o in_o he_o three_o that_o this_o substantial_a union_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n so_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n &_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n become_v one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o eutiches_n teach_v but_o 6._o but_o exit_fw-la duabus_fw-la naturis_fw-la secundum_fw-la substantiam_fw-la vnitis_fw-la unum_fw-la &_o eumdem_fw-la christum_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la confitetur_fw-la condennatus_fw-la est_fw-la council_n lateran_n sub_fw-la martin_n 1._o can._n 6._o hypostatical_a whereby_o god_n and_o man_n become_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n these_o particular_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o incarnation_n though_o high_a subtle_a and_o incomprehensible_a to_o reason_n christian_n may_v and_o must_v believe_v because_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n in_o general_a counsel_n though_o the_o vulgar_a be_v not_o bind_v explicit_o to_o know_v they_o in_o this_o sort_n we_o say_v that_o the_o manner_n how_o our_o saviour_n body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n must_v be_v believe_v &_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v as_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o very_a life_n be_v and_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n reveal_v which_o mystery_n in_o substance_n be_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o priest_n minister_v thereof_o demonstrate_v what_o seem_v bread_n may_v true_o say_v thereof_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o suppose_a as_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n i_o infer_v that_o two_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o mystery_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n &_o can_v be_v call_v in_o question_n without_o danger_n of_o misbelief_n first_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n second_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o transubstantiation_n a_o addition_n prove_v the_o catholic_a real_a presence_n according_a to_o the_o literal_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n against_o ministerial_a metaphor_n figure_n and_o shift_n his_o majesty_n in_o question_v only_a transubstantiation_n seem_v to_o suppose_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o
saviour_n under_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n and_o that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v true_a in_o their_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o the_o answerer_n omit_v to_o prove_v large_o this_o catholic_a doctrine_n now_o the_o minister_n find_v himself_o unable_a upon_o this_o supposition_n of_o his_o majesty_n to_o answer_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n for_o transubstantiation_n yea_o pag._n 397._o affirm_v that_o unless_o transubstantiation_n be_v grant_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n can_v be_v true_a in_o their_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n hence_o he_o deny_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n substantial_o within_o the_o sacred_a sign_n &_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v figurative_o and_o not_o proper_o to_o be_v understand_v he_o grant_v a_o real_a and_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o word_n but_o so_o obscure_o as_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o understand_v his_o meaning_n wherefore_o to_o clear_v this_o matter_n wherein_o minister_n desire_v to_o be_v dark_a that_o man_n may_v not_o see_v the_o gross_a infidelity_n of_o their_o hart_n against_o god_n express_a word_n i_o shall_v show_v 3._o thing_n first_o what_o zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n hold_v in_o this_o point_n second_o how_o the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o zuinglius_fw-la &_o caluin_n be_v against_o god_n word_n three_o that_o their_o reason_n not_o to_o admit_v of_o the_o literal_a truth_n of_o christ_n word_n be_v vain_a and_o idle_a the_o zuinglian_n and_o caluinian_a religion_n about_o the_o sacrament_n §._o 1._o a_o threefold_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v confess_v on_o all_o side_n the_o first_o figurative_a or_o in_o a_o sacramental_a sign_n bread_n signify_v his_o body_n and_o wine_n his_o blood_n the_o second_o imaginative_a or_o by_o the_o pious_a apprehension_n of_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n who_o for_o more_o devotion_n sake_n do_v or_o may_v imagine_v as_o if_o he_o see_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o eucharist_n true_o real_o and_o blee_o present_a under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o three_o effectual_a or_o according_a to_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n of_o grace_n purchase_v by_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o give_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o sacrament_n unto_o the_o soul_n to_o nourish_v the_o ghostly_a life_n thereof_o as_o all_o proceed_v thus_o far_o so_o zwinglians_n will_v proceed_v no_o further_o they_o grant_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n figurative_o in_o a_o sign_n imaginative_o by_o faith_n effectual_o by_o grace_n but_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v present_a according_a to_o their_o corporal_a substance_n or_o further_a then_o in_o the_o outward_a sign_n to_o the_o mouth_n and_o in_o the_o inward_a effect_n to_o the_o soul_n so_o that_o they_o grant_v the_o sacramental_a sign_n to_o be_v bare_a and_o empty_a in_o respect_n of_o contain_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n though_o full_a and_o effectual_a in_o respect_n of_o affoard_v soule-nourishing_a grace_n caluinist_n seem_v in_o their_o word_n to_o maintain_v a_o more_o real_a presence_n for_o though_o they_o maintain_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o place_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n only_o and_o not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o same_o body_n without_o be_v present_a upon_o earth_n be_v give_v we_o on_o earth_n not_o only_o by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o faith_n non_fw-la solùm_fw-la dum_fw-la fide_fw-la amplectimur_fw-la jesum_fw-la christum_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la crucifixum_fw-la &_o à_fw-la mortuis_fw-la excitatum_fw-la not_o only_o in_o the_o inward_a spiritual_a effect_n of_o soule-nourishing_a grace_n purchase_v by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o body_n non_fw-la solùm_fw-la dum_fw-la bonis_fw-la eius_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quae_fw-la nobis_fw-la acquisivit_fw-la corpore_fw-la svo_fw-la efficaciter_fw-la communicamus_fw-la but_o realiter_fw-la real_o &_o true_o dum_fw-la habitat_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la dum_fw-la unum_fw-la fit_a nobiscum_fw-la dum_fw-la eius_fw-la membra_fw-la sumus_fw-la de_fw-la carne_fw-la eius_fw-la dum_fw-la in_o unam_fw-la ut_fw-la ita_fw-la loquar_fw-la cum_fw-la ipso_fw-la substantiam_fw-la coalescimus_fw-la caluin_n in_o cap._n 11.1_o ad_fw-la cor._n hence_o we_o may_v discover_v the_o caluinian_a juggle_n and_o play_v fast_o &_o loose_v about_o this_o mystery_n when_o they_o so_o often_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a but_o spiritual_o for_o the_o word_n spiritual_a may_v be_v use_v in_o this_o mystery_n for_o two_o end_n first_o to_o express_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n present_a &_o to_o signify_v the_o real_a presence_n not_o of_o the_o corporal_a substance_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n but_o only_o of_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n thereof_o to_o wit_n of_o soule-feeding_a grace_n this_o sense_n be_v false_a as_o shall_v be_v prove_v and_o the_o very_a same_o which_o caluin_n do_v condemn_v in_o the_o zwinglian_o as_o execrable_a blasphemy_n opusculo_fw-la de_fw-la coena_fw-la domini_fw-la second_o to_o express_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o presence_n and_o to_o signify_v that_o the_o corporal_a substance_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v present_v true_o yet_o in_o a_o spiritual_a that_o be_v secret_a invisible_a &_o indivisible_a manner_n this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a and_o herein_o not_o differ_v from_o the_o catholic_a in_o like_a manner_n their_o phrase_n of_o presence_n by_o faith_n be_v equivocal_a and_o may_v have_v a_o threefold_a sense_n first_o presence_n by_o faith_n may_v signify_v presence_n by_o pious_a imagination_n of_o faith_n the_o receiver_n conceave_a the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o see_v the_o same_o corporal_o and_o blee_o present_a if_o by_o presence_n by_o faith_n caluinist_n mean_v no_o more_o than_o this_o than_o they_o do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o zwinglian_o nor_o do_v they_o put_v any_o more_o real_a presence_n then_o imaginative_a that_o be_v presence_n of_o thing_n according_a to_o pious_a representation_n and_o apprehension_n though_o not_o real_o &_o in_o truth_n second_o presence_n by_o faith_n may_v signify_v that_o faith_n do_v dispose_v and_o prepare_v the_o soul_n and_o that_o then_o unto_o the_o soul_n prepare_v by_o faith_n our_o saviour_n be_v unite_v real_o and_o true_o not_o according_a to_o the_o corporal_a substance_n of_o his_o body_n but_o only_o according_a to_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n of_o his_o grace_n this_o sense_n be_v also_o zuinglian_n and_o condemn_v by_o caluin_n as_o have_v be_v show_v three_o presence_n by_o faith_n may_v signify_v presence_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o presence_n which_o only_a faith_n can_v find_v out_o feel_v &_o behold_v this_o sense_n be_v true_a and_o catholic_a and_o do_v suppose_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v present_a absolute_o and_o independent_o of_o faith_n for_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n afore_o hand_n present_a faith_n shall_v not_o be_v true_a that_o judge_v his_o body_n to_o be_v present_a whether_o our_o minister_n be_v zuinglian_n or_o caluinist_n in_o this_o point_n god_n only_o know_v he_o speak_v obscure_o of_o purpose_n he_o never_o say_v as_o caluin_n do_v li._n 4._o institut_fw-la c._n 17._o n._n 7._o that_o by_o substantial_a communication_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o supper_n deliver_v unto_o the_o faith_n full_a yet_o he_o say_v and_o often_o repeat_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o real_o &_o effectual_o communicate_v these_o word_n savour_v more_o of_o the_o caluinian_a then_o of_o the_o zuinglian_n phrase_n notwithstanding_o his_o add_v effectual_o after_o true_o and_o real_o may_v draw_v the_o speech_n to_o be_v zuinglian_n in_o sense_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v true_o real_o effectual_o that_o be_v real_o accord_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o reality_n of_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n not_o real_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o reality_n of_o the_o corporal_a substance_n the_o zuinglian_n and_o caluinian_a presence_n confute_v §._o 2._o the_o zuinglian_n doctrine_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_v only_o in_o a_o effectual_a sign_n of_o grace_n not_o in_o substance_n be_v against_o the_o plain_a &_o express_v word_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o he_o do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v the_o sign_n or_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n nor_o this_o be_v the_o benefit_n or_o effect_v of_o my_o body_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v his_o body_n in_o substance_n and_o essence_n if_o the_o substantial_a verb_n est_fw-la do_v signify_v substance_n and_o essence_n hence_o luther_n epist._n ad_fw-la argent_fw-fr say_v that_o the_o word_n be_v nimis_fw-la clara_fw-la toto_fw-la clear_a and_o much_o more_o clear_a than_o he_o can_v have_v wish_v caluin_n also_o in_o cap._n